durgatiparo0diana tantra
Transcription
durgatiparo0diana tantra
^'; a l TANTRA DURGATIPARO0DIANA ???I` ED IN TTT SAPNSICRIT A? D TIBETAN VERSIONS '.'II TI? AISLATIOTI h'GLISIH T ?. AND NOT . PART I flTTROIJCDRY A1TD HAT-MILLS 'T? ISTT ll TSTJATIOT1 j.'/ImF NOMS submitted for Ph D degree at The School of and African Oriental University of Studies London by Tadeuez under the Skorupski supervision, of Prof. D. L. Snellgrove, M. A., BIBL. (LOODIY. UNIV. D. Litt (Cant. ), Ph D (London), F. B. A. BEST COPY AVAILABLE Variable print quality PAGE NUMBERS CUT OFF IN ORIGINAL ABS Aires Tantre. and the manuscripts of 'This class. editions the of this by about to correspond thesis the A complete hundred later and Tibetan from from earlier version itself and the several now in Tibetan translation versions is or Tantra, in two distinct versions given Sanskrit Excerpts the Tibetan which Sanskrit. later the of available. both from separated one manuscripts translations. commentaries from both clearly of both matter are using Indian bloch print version of which have been translated version are also A comparative the of only table mantra available of the_two included. also cheaters, is Sanskrit available in translations, two Tibetan texts are the Jae- the The available years. translation aglish There Tibetan the of Sanskrit This in the of as available Canon. to belonging work an edition of translations Buddhist both the consists available five litarary a Buddhist Tibetan Tibetan both work another is pariäodhana TßACT its versions, numbered as such versions is falls in the and the similar earlier parts The subject version. second whole three into conveniently is chapter in fact identical. Subject by !Mkyammi or by the The instructions the of rites the Tibetan. of a satisfactory lizing given initiation ceremony This evil is satter in presented Lord Vars. to relate which are known as homa in ceremony rebirth, influences, is used and also securing the the form i who speaks in Sanskrit, sbyin a this-worldly prosperity in flven of place various as well rites either the them, after-death for in of arrangement given for discourses of the Buddha. and mandalas descriptions as to (burnt in offering) order intentions, and overcoming to insure such foes of as tranquiall kinds. C0 !T TEN TS PART I INT DUC'IORY MATERIALS AND TCLISII TRANSLATION WIT}I NOTES Abstract Page ii Bibliography vi INTROIJJCTION (i) The different (ii) Comparison versions the of (iii) The translations (iv) ?r' Durgatiparifiodhana of contents Versions of 1 A and B2 8 and commentaries presentation the of Tetra, 12 TIM TRANSLATION OF THE" TANTRA CRAP1'''R I 12TTFODUCTTRYSC' ?E 14 MANTRAS Preliminary Mantras 17 mantras of the Buddhas tetras ? of the Mantras of the ?Untrue of the Eight 17 Goddesses 18 Offerings 1$ Gates .ga Sizteen Bodhisattvas ITERITS ARISING FROM TIM PRACTIC 19 OF THIS ¶t ACBING 20 (EvocATIOIT) TM _TA Four the of 20 Obeisances 23 Confession of sins 23 Twentyfold worship 24 Self-offering to all Psrtieipatiof of Vow for THE living aatU,ration 11V1$aglri« of the the Buddhas in Perfect e. in creatures 26 and Bodhisattvas the Eiligtitsnment roots of merit 26 26 27 a, )UR V1DP1A The __dz#A ds The dharme, a The karte- dris 29 30 30 The mz.)-i amzdrä 32 fficaoy P'*ises of of Production the _antra the divinities of the and the ienda1 a of midrI the rnaneala 32 33 33 iv Page 38 Rites in the manaala 40 n RITES FOR TIi 41 CLOSING SC] TE CHAPTERII OF SALTI MAJ)ALA 42 r_IAr1_DALA of vr Dh! ranis by VajEap pronounced Description of Consecration 47 ii the 47 i 48 mandela 49 in the mandala 51 11MTDALAOF TIM FOUR GREAT ICINGS PT 52 ALA OF TM, GüARDIANS OF TIM TIN DIRECTIONS P_IAN )ALA OF TIC LIGHT GREAT PLANS 54 MAITDAI "OF THE EIGHT GREAT ICS 55 OF T177 NINE BHAI+AVAS 56 GALA P_ZA OF T' 57 MAI?DALA OF T1lE KING OF LONG LIFE P_ A Initiation ?ierits GRJAT GODS 58 60 of the pupils those of in consecrated the TIL^ MUR RITES 61 mandala _' " 62 pacifying 62 for gaining 63 The rite for wibjugation 63 The rite for destroying 63 The rite for The rite prosperity PRAIS S OF "'?!OST ?.'f'0 P?0"ATE CI L1'I =S I ,LP A ($OYAL- IOPF{) 64 Il--7 66 OP CATTJ.Vl. =T I': ITIATIOT_1 At1P FITSTI? CTIMS FIý'G OF T D?1L'. DI FIT IT RITE 70 71 FOR TiM D^ßß IN TMI.. I Preliminary BMONNGI21G TO Tfi DIIA'?A DITnGA"'IP4?',I SFJ 77 ds,la of the ma2? of 74 77 ceremony 'sudr? s and mentra"s of the tanzas :P.I; ?Lý'iL ALA Consecration 'Jorship 66 T 'TO PUPILS 7: e-MU A SET OP DIVINITIES RIT GI praises 79 )iardions of the Ten Directions 81 83 V Page Boma, rite OF PUPILS LTTDTÄI TIM INITIATION 35 85 TG OF VOI:1S FINAL FZAISOE 91 NOTJS TO Tfi'J INTROIUCTIO11? 93 NOTES TO CNAPT ?I 95 1107^s 7) CIIAPT? TlllII 100 NOTES TO CHAPT 1 III 120 GLOSSARY OP SPECIAL 132 TERMS PART II TTT73SM S1MIT =, NOTE ON T" T (VrsRSION B) iii RMSCRIPTS TW SANSKRIT TEXT OP TFT TANTRA 1 FOO9TOT^S 110 PART III Ti E TIB^TAN TEXTS (VTRSIONS }3 &A TAXT B (Vv?RSION B "'XT 1 A (V 3SIoT A 110 NOTIS ON TEXT A The description The Story of The description 166 of the the Basic god Viii of the Nom} ala of the Tantm 179 1aa r iLrabha ftla of the 168 Fierce Divinities 189 BIBL10GRAPHY and block-prints Manuscripts by abbreviation. preceded TEXT OF TI employed, TANTRA VERSION A Tibetan Tib A: translation begs , De blin thaws dag par bcom pa yaii padgra cad yogis su sbyo$ kyi brjid ba gzi rdzogs rgyal brtag pohi rgyas salis pahi Tian soli gcig pa phyogs pa Les bya ba. Sarvadurgat tathägatasyärhatah parifodhanatejoAjasya samyaksambuddhasya kalpaikadeßanäma. by Säntigarbha Translated by Rin Revised and Jayarakgita. Chen mchog of T. T. (Taisho Tripitaka) rMa. vol 5. No 116, pp 83-2-1 to 99-4-8. VERSION B Sanskrit next A: MS belonging undated, Samvat 1018 C: MS belonging lios. The text of the Newari of Nepal. Sri Vikramas'aha. Archives the National reign of of Nepal. Archives 109 folios, script, Devanägari 62 folios. script, to Mahäva ra Vajraclxyaa the during to Cambridge ( XVII to the life Sri XVIII Library. 99 folios. SIhadeva, Add 1378. Newari script, Add 1623. Newari script. 21 and ends on folio an folio begins script, 111 fo- century). University abridge Newari Rana Bahädura Library. University or early Tantra of Nepal. 100a. Samvat (=AD 1700). F: MS belonging of National (= AD 1898). Undated 5: MS belonging 820 to written D: MS belonging the during written B: MS belonging Undated, to Buddhist to Sanskrit Hodgson Collection, Undated. the Royal Asiatic Manuscripts by prof Society. in the E. B. Cowell No 50 ( according possession & J. Eggeling). of Royal Newari to the Asiatic script. Catalogue Society, 99 folios, i. vi to the National G: YI3 belonging Newari of Nepal. Archives 103 folios. script. Samvat 794 (=AD 1674). H: Atha Contemporary Kantipur. in Tib Containing pages. and hymns of mantras Vajräcarya. Amoghavajra Sampädaka l4 nublications. form, an abbreviated Tibetan kalpaikoddefiaai. durgatiparigodhana the introduction praises. translation B: De bin thams gcig g§egs cad yons su sbyo$ pa des bya ba. T. T. vol 5. No 117, kyi brjid ba gzi by Devendradeva Translated dag par boom pa yan pa dgra rgyal sans rgyas pahi brtog pohi clan so$ pa phyogs deal. and Chos rje pp 99-5-2 rdzogs to 121-5-4. COr TTAR. D IES Buddhaguhya: an son sbyon bahi don gyi Author: Baiijanautti. hbru Durgatipari6odhanärtha- igrel. (Sans Buddhaguhya ba). san t rgyas T. T. vol 76, No 3451, pp 15-3-2 to 52-2-7. Ka.madhenu: kyi rgral po iPhags pa flan so$ thaws cad yogis su sbyon ba gzi brjid fes bya ba cho ga fib mobi rgya1 po chen pobi rgya cher hgrel pa. Arya. sarvadurgatirarigodhanateioräjanäma tTkä. Mahäkalparäiasya Author: Kinadhenu. 76, T. T. vol Vv: by Vinayacandra Translated No 3452, Pp 52-2-7 ;ßegs de b fin to aid Chos kyi fies rab. 105-1-1. boom pa yaßi dag par rdzogs path sails brjid ba kyi ! Sian thaws gzi Sri rgyal rgyºud sbyo$ po yoiis su cad ras sots fee bya ba. bgad rgyan mdzes pahi pa r9ya1 po chen pohi ream par LrD rje go oha). T. T6 vol 76, No 3453, PP 105-1-1 to Authors Vajravarman bCom ldan hdas pa dgra 202-1-3. SB: an sofa thame rgranLea Translated be. gzi kyi brjid po brtag rgyal cad yofis su sbyoh bye. ba. Sarvadurgatipariäodhanatejoräjakalpälokäla4käranäma. by S1. iyidyMcaravarma; n and dI3afi phyug rgyal pa snafi b mtshan. T. T. vol 76, No 3454, pp 202-1-3 to 235-3-8KK: De biin pahi salis rgyas flan soft Les thaws cad yo$s su sbyoii ba gzi brjid bya bahi brtag kyi rgyal po pahi bLa d pa: Sarvadurgatipariäodhanatejor$jatathägatärhatsamyaksambuddhakalpagLegs pa dgra bcom pa yafi dag par rdzogs nämalikä. Author: Buddhänandagarbha K_umärakala§a 284-1-6. and Khyuii (Santis rgras po chos brtson. kun da-ah stfif T. T. vol 76, po). Translated No 3455, by pp 237-1-1 to viii Ts: baba an soff sbyofi r Tsoh kha pa. Author: DoU al rglud Complete rie}ii gsuih gi mchan daft bcas Tsofi kha pa , vol Works of pa. Tha. SANSKRIT AND TIBETAN WORKS DIRECTLY RELATED TO THIS TANTRA DP: Durgatiparifiodhana. Newari MS belonging 13 leaves. script. AYS: Adiyogasamadhi. Newari Hodgson Illustrated. Nr 51. Newari DS: Dargatiparigodhanasamädhi. 62 folios. DMV: an son thams po). DMK: cad yoiis bya ba. (Safts Muti. DSK: to bahi dkyil a private to hkhor su sbyof atipari§odhanaman. bahi dkYil cad yo$s GDKT: rGyud sde kun btus. initiations the the vol T. T. vol po). b! (=AD 1799). Newari collection. gyi cho ga ies chen bza$ hkhor su sbyo: i ba fee 77, Texts a collection gyi Wavidhikramanäma. by Budd, gsa: 'i ba) . Translated T. T. vol 77, No 3461, pp 12-5-1 to 16-5-5. sfiif Society. po. bya ba. Kun jJL4 77, T. T. vol 12-5-1. bya LW Sarvadurgatiparigodhananämasaipkoiptakriylvidhi. $&., Asiatic 71nandagarbha and Rin rgyas an soli thaws Royal Samvat 919 ma.. Author: by BuddhaSirihänti cad yofs Sarvadur su sbyofi aaan alavidhin Translated an soft thams to Undated. 6-5-3 pp No 3460, 986 (= AD 1866). 31 folios. script. Add 1278. Library. MS belonging MS belonging Sarvadurgatiparigodhan sfi of Nepal. Archives University Samvat Abhisamayasädhana. Collection script. to Cambridge 82 folios. DAS: Durgatiparifiodhani the National MS. Palm-leaf MS belonging script, to No 3463, explaining Author: Maßijugrivarman to Buddhaguhya and Bran ka bya ba mdor bsdus Anandagarbha Kun 29-5-1. the. significance, of ohe'hundred rim chhoga. hi Author pp 27-1-5 cho gahi fes pa and thirty techniques, two maz alas by 'Jams-dbyangs Blo--gter-dbang-po skYa pa tradition. Edited inspiration Mkhyen brtse'i 'Jam-dbyangs dbang-po. of his s VI, N. Lungtok & N. Galtsan, Delhi 1971. and of under pa. ix OTHER EDITED BUDDHIST TANTRIC TEXTS ed. asamäiatantra, Study A Critical 27189, library the of the of Sädhanamälä, of Vall4e Jßiänasiddhi, G. O. S. xliv. Works, Sricakrasamvaratantra, ed. HV: The Hevajra D. L. Snellgrove, , Tantra Kazi The Cwadvnahäro Vanatantra, ed. S. George, The Sarvarodaya-Tantra. Mk-has grub Wayman, Mouton, Niannayogävali Oriental Society, and English edition 1974. Trivandrum Sanskrit Macdonald, -Paris Shinichi Buddhist 1959. Press lx 1962. Tsuda, Tantras, lxxvi, lxs, Series, Tokyo 1974. Ferdinand D. Lessing Benoytosh Bhattacharyya, 1968. Abha äkaragupta of Mahäaqta Institute, Oriental the of University A critical chapters, selected 1919. London, I-VIII, Ariane Fundamentals tie's Oxford Sastri, Garapati du TWAjufirimülakalpa, Le Maýiqala and Alex Dawa Samdup, Luzac, Chapters Christopher MaZju6rimülakalpa, and xli. G. O. S. xc. raha, Two Vajrayana translation, 1896. Louvain, G. O. S. xxvi 1971. London, Studies, 744, thesis Fremantle, Francesca liii. Series), Oriental and African Oriental Poussin, ed. Bhattacharya, Advayavajrasaip tra, Cuhyasama= School eci de la pa2icakrama, G. O. S. (Gaekwad's Bhattacharya, Baroda, , ed. 1972. HISTORICAL RrEFERENCES The Blue History Annals, translation of Buddhism History T%ranätha's by Bu eton, Buddhism Chimpa Alaka of Chattopadhyaya Biography Dharmastämin, Translated of by George Les Bouddhistes by George N. Roerich, in (Chog lo tsa 1949. by E. Obermiller, from translated India, and edited N. Roerich, Kadmiriens translated Culcutta, the Tibetan Chattopadhyaya, by Debiprasad ba Chos rje Heidelberg, dpal). A Tibetan Patna, 1959. au Moyen Age,, Jean Naudou, Paris, 1968. 1931. by Lama Simla, 1970. monk pilgrim. c x T TO RITUAL AND YOGA REFERENCES RELEE Painted Tibetan Indo-Tibetica, Teoria G. Tucci, e Pratica Buddhist Two Lamaistic The Buddhist Benoytosh Eugene Walter Alex references 1957. Nev York, in appear the Culcutta, 1968. 1965. 1974. RLne de Nebesky-Wojkowits, du Täntrisme 1935. Bhattacharyya, Clark, Wayman, London, a l'Iconodraphie 1975. relevant Oxford, 1950. Calcutta London, Evans Wentz, Iconography, and Demons of Tibet, mann, Paris, S. B. Dasgupta, Buddhism, 1949 ThomaAgtrolabio, D. L. Sne11grove, Pantheons, Tantras, Introduction I-IV vols Doctrines, Himalaya, The Indian Other Tantric Yoga and Secret BHs Buddhist Oracles to I-III. vole de Ma Bala, G. Taect, An Introduction Tibetan G. Tucci, Scrolls, Bouddhigue, Oxford University Marie-Th6rbse de Mall- notes. OTHER ABBREVIATIONS M is Sanskrit-English BBSs Buddhist Hybrid Mvys Mahävyutpatti, Dictionary Sanskrit ed. Sakaki, , Sir Monier Monier-Williams, Grammar and Dictionary Kyoto, 1916 Franklin , Oxford Press, 1956. 1970. Edgerton, INTRO (i) The different This Aodhana to the for versions work consists (Elimination of Yogar. Tantra Tantra boom yons su sbyofi ba gzi This corresponds tathägatasyäxhatah Taisho Tripitakaq dag par brjid kyi (Indian) V with p&i translators the Tibetan listed as in are de biin title: an identical nan pa phyogs title: sari thams ies pa gcig cad bya ba. Sarvadurgatirarigodhanatejoräjasya kalpaikade5an5ma2 a Sanskrit of There safes rgyas brtog poi Sanskrit a translation No 117 is version the of the end of the 8th (Tibetan) concerning at and Jayarakýita the a translation scholar-translators betan translator Chos rje which distinquish this A. D. version, century the a different of Indian by rdzogs materials Sarvadurgatipari6odhana, vol rgyal a correct and Tibetan the of Tantra. belonging work essential provide this of Sarvadurgatipari- literary a Buddhist translations versions the of Tantra by as used A. D., century namely be whom more will below. written to Destinies), samyaksembuddhasya No 116 is S ntigarbha Evil The Tibetan a yati to and translation two versions the g6egs pa dgra Indian All Tantra. Sarvadurgatipari§odhana an edition different Section, No 116 and 117 in the of CTION the of class. the controlling Canon, DU Devendradeva dpal in the 13th in four time, na and the A. D. The textual A, to was available which known as Version known as Version difference version and Uanikagrij1 century hereafter version, hereafter considerable Sanskrit differences from B. can be largely five centuries Ti- 8th the explained which separate them. A third version Vajravarman the of (T. T. vol 76, Vajravarm2n here Ido 3451 to the The Tibetan omissions. a basis commentaries quotes for his and there translation As for which the to me, as listed full the refer text of translation of manuscript Sanskrit the version Bibligraphy, This use. only in Tantra with work indicates A but one or that like alone two very text, in the all Tibetan the all of them slight he was using Version of translations A which diverged in by rantigarbha and Jayarakýita. of included the commentary Tibetan the his the commentary to Version used of to exclusively a manuscript was subsequently in thanks available now survive which 3455) commentary from is Tantra we have made considerable which Sanskrit other the of as details for their Canon. manuscripts available (the earliest are late Nepalese manuscripts complete one of the 17th century A.? ). ) of Version B only. ',;e have no Sanskrit in commentaries for Version 'T'ibetan translation surviving , because presumably , 2 it a late was comparatively I the mention should the part of Bibliography) Version Of the taries It the the of To this Version but I have might Sanskrit the in 77, are there texts turn up in Nepalese the For works materials containing Version differences Indian Sanskrit the of originals Thus for had to use Version A apply large between the commen- source Sanskrit collections. I have to the A and all fragments Tantra, relating became which ritual short no complete although commentaries by no means throughout. come upon the various Version lost of form a separate B. of so far well Abhisamayasädhana cycle, Version of translations have been commentaries edition same part it, may all materials entitled manuscripts and Dirgatiparigodhani T. 7. vol Tibetan to Sanskrit Sarvadurgatipari6odhana the various referring material. the to correspond which of to in the of representing B. Also directly relating existence 'idiyogasarnädhi Durgatiparidiodhana, (see compilation. in the B only. part, two Versions please see below. it Finally (1357-1419) his that he draws very Comparison is This refer to because of the heavily Canon, on the of I; ämadhenu. the contents Indian of translation Tibetan making scholar of to no reference commentaries Versions Version Version already (this Sanskrit in part corresponds pagination II), while Version VERSION B exactly A is to the pagination from numbered Page Page 11 to 59 1111 to 1159 20 11510 Set of and of initial mantras the Bud aim same to of page 111 to INTRODUCTION 6 above, A and B. VERSION A same just !:Je may note mentioned CHAPTER I 510 to B. At done by a comparative table. The page numbers, as-given (Tibetan III Texts). Please note that Version B was edited text and thus it is numbered availability of the Sanskrit page 1 to 109 text Tibetan Tson kha pa (vol Tha of Sarvadurgatiparigodhana on the on the Tibetan great best Part of comments the on that especially (ii) in the a commentary works), occurs that noteworthy who wrote complete as it is 11617 below, first from the 165. 3 621 to 729 Continuation of mantras. Goddesses mantras of the Light Four Guardiar. s of the Offerings, Bodhisattvas Sixteen of the Gates, of the Good Age. 8 11711 Benefits accuring text. this from using 6-27 Same as Version 8 to 11618 28 to A. 11618 to 11711 11712-23 9a Sakra's leading question into a state & entering of S by amuni. meditation same 98 till the end of Chapter 11724 I. different from Version Totally headings 'or detailed see the of Content. A. list Description 2an121a. The rite, to 11924 of the basic 1925 purification, coercing etc. 205 Worship 12012 Introducing 1211 (parallel text in Chap III, the pupils to 12225 The vow iposed the upon pupils. 7024 to 715) 1231 (Chapter III, same 701 to 784) to 1297 Painting of a tha'x kha, seeing in the manýala of consecration deceased sbyin sreg rohi 1298 to Praises 1305 by gods and ^äkyarmini. worship of signs, the 4 1306 to 13211 Gods ask to see Vimalamailiprabha and this God?becomes manifest. to 1338 13212 Merits of of reading, this 'antra. teaching etc of 133' to 1356 S"akyamuni elaborates upon Tantra. of this the powers ChAPTER II 135 3611 to 418 10 to 138-3-7 iiand.ala of the Usniýaass, Consecration, same gestures etc. 138-4-1 re story of to Vinala 139-1-8 ni ri abhor (i or : glish summary see Part Page 179) III, 139-1-. 8 to 139-2-5 äni by the assembly Praises of Va'ra of gods and the question concerning those of limited good fortune and life. short 18 to 454 41 139-2-5 to 140-1-1 ',;anda]. a of Vajra äni, Mantras and consecrations confirmed. sane 455-26 L40-1-1 to 140-1-8 ä.dhana S, , same 4527 to 4723 140.1-8 an al a of the your ",rea.t to 14ri-3-. 3 5 4724 to 5024 I1anj2 of the 141-2-3 L40-3-8 to 141-2-3 to 141-3-6 a. of the Guardians Ten Directions* same 50`5 to 529 Taidata of the eight Planets. same 141-3-6 to 141-5-4 5210 to 53"6 ltandala of the , ight same Great 141-5-4 to 142-2-4 541 to 5521 Manigala 5562 to of the same Bhairavas. 57ý3 I' =dala 5724 to -Tara . of the same Great to 1.42-4-7 142-4-7 to 143-4-3 Gods. 6125 M=dala of same 142--2-4 Amitäyus. 6126 to 6217 143-4-3 to 143-5-2 Merits gained by those who are in the above mandala. consecrated same 6218 to 635 143-5-2 How to act on behalf to 143-5-8 of the deceased. same. 637 to 654 143-5-8 to 144-3-2 anti, The Four Rites: MgJi, a. vag a and abh same 655 to 6621 144-3-2 to 144-4-8 Pledge of upon those Teaching. the gods to bestow every benefit this and propagate who practice same 6 CJJ. APTl7d III 2-19 145 11 6622 to 67 ; tan ala of Va same but texts of the mandala amantebhadra.. 1 uni or before the description diverge is completed. 6712 to 6929 Production & initiation 701 to of 145`0 to 14626 the mandal a of pupils. 784 1471-15 same as Version A, Chapter 1231 to 1297 788 to Continuation of the description and of the mandala, consecration mantras. How one becomes nities. I, 822 14716 to belonging A set of divinities to the Sarvadurpatiparigodhana max;dala. 828 to Brief 14813 Continuation of consecration, mudr s and worship. mantras, Special so far 9816 to Tour kites. each Vajrasattva are concerned. 1493-12 mantras & mudräs erections, the Ten Di o More verses of the Four 1086 Consecration to pupils, the 1492 function of as the rites 9025 to 9815 (cont), Uorship of the Guardians hymn of praise. of to divi- the 14812 description 9024 to equal & instructions given effects of consecration. describing Bites. the effects 14920 to 1535 :description of of. divinities. dress of murr verious sets 1536-17 Seed-syllables in Part III) (see notes to p 153 15318 to 15513 Connecting section, spells llivinities. of the Pierce ?f ma? 4ala 15514 to 15613 Spells effects for of the entering the 'ü tes. manýala and 7 15614 to 16319 description )etailed Pites. Final The first part of The 'Basic in Sarvavit the discussions The 'Basic Tantra' consists the similar or almost cement of the T. T. vol 77 (see contains large B has the removed identical to the T`urthermore Bibliography), which similar also of of the concentration mandala Chapter the above text that III) into tions the Its ma). phyi world main have similar the III Latter neous collection- ption of on Four hand-gestures Fierce the the Divinities, finý-. l praises. as is of gods of lokottara), of Chapter to the (rgyud It anti, mudrä), and then phyi seed-syllables again in divinities for the of the in missing mandala, arrangement referred mandala. the of Version 'Latter the Thought Pari6odhana story in This Tantra' rd and initia.. and two Four god both B. (h; days. ) B Version of and the the content text. summary page 179, of in works of to as the repla- alas of ;fites. to as the 'Latter ma). It is rather a miscella- a mandala of Vajrap'ani, a descri- vase a and abhicära), a sriall mahi phyi contains isti, raising bhävanä) description is short first spells (laukika) world A (pp 144 to 165) of materials. ??ites this and the Version Tantra' descriptions, very inserted the the Sanskrit names and their to as the referred the are is which three text This fact mentioned referred also as, in above envisaging rebirths, contents Mn dalas beyond the of evil on Vajrap-arý}i six Chapter part his concerning centres chapter li FT text. are as A. as Version glas been are with existence. of names and having there bahi as well maadala, state There is the same except of both Versions (Tibetan text page 138 and English II Vimalamaniprabha Part the Nine of the samädhi), Tantra by another The actual text which has been inserted in (beginning on page 6 with set of mantras) refers (bodhicitta), ü'ä) iEnlightenment of of worship states this same introduction to materials (rtsa of and his contains Tantra' this in samädhi. bearing content Tantra'. of man1iala and replaced or 7diyog, Bibliography) amount basic 'Basic and consecration Version of 'Basic and the the of äakyamuni on centring god Vimalamaniprabha as ManJalavidhi the I) 115) pp 111 to has been (see manuscripts A (Chapter initiation centre, Chapter can be termed i, Tantra' concerning The first praises same Version leA Introduction rg5*ud). lour 20 163 to 16515 1087 to 10925 the the of bTja), a description mantras of the chapter and manda.la ;Four Mites of the and lastly 8 II Chapter It manIala. Version of diverges from From that completed. point instructions and consecrations the departed ones(mostly the exact belonging nities to of once more initiation the (iii) The translations The first to circa the Indian him dPal calls attendants brtsegs Padmasambhava into The colophon also by revised tin of the seven lo tsa ba. was killed. the end of Tibetans the 8th half of (1197-1264). of regard some information arbha consecrated zhya mandala, homa rite, short final praises Tibetan (Tib from that this A. D. by the is available Tantra of Devendradeva. revise Tibetan. Tantra was as one ba of chen mehog was made towards 863 A. D. during the Chos rje Chag. Aänika with fin out, B) was made sometime this 56rij4iäna The biography deal and rnam thaw) by G. Roerich. teachers about broke before sometime of translators as monks and as a renowned translation Lo tsa to bring by Bu ston mentioned and turmoil that clear into five the sent the of to be ordained translated Indian texts translation also as one of kha pa among skilful 815 to 836 A. D. ) to Buddhist the yas, (Tson who were (ruled selected assistance lufi by Bu sto4 translating of text lha listed was assassinated the the A= (740 brtsari bam of Jayarak$ita by Bu ston and Sei's khoii also sroz'i lde ceremony Tibet3 mentioned fact century to who wrote three of commentaries them, namely on this I3uddhazhya, '.iantra, ]rnanda_ n06 lived the in A. ). and revised (Tib B= Version has been and Vajravesrm Buddha who the with dpal Chos rje With 13th into Khri consecration rI'ria, who is of translation the is seem fairly He studied it translated the century Sanskrit of Ling reign the in system who were would from to be built aal pa can The second first whole Chen mchog It the Rat pa can mentions when the divi- of A. D. It was transend of the eight century Säntigarbha Lo tsa ba Jayarakasita. and the Tibetan He is by King the and systematize a set and mudräs, the A. -or A. Tantra aksita) " gsal snap Tibet. appointed for rites in rites and lastly pupils, Version I. is the at monastery Iran rie of who were Version this of teacher Buddhist maný.ala, vows, of describes it Next mantras manda.la initiation of Chapter table). the of and homa initiates some parts and taking during Tibet visited 798 A. D. ) and took part first description the VajraLaii's of and commentaries. A) was made sometime Sentigarbha on the consecration, in description describes comparative pupils translation by the first with pupils, same as those are lated it the Sarvadurgatipari6odaana of which Version onwards parallel the initiation worship, A before bestowed the with Version see the references begins B also in monastery the 8th of century Vikramafila. A. D. Fe was a pupil Täran ätha mentions / of r3uddhajfYäna hin as being; 9 but Tibet to visit the Blue during can was born the of Mahlpgla Vajravarman A certain '[)harmakirti the in died came from as the said He was renowned as the of reign tal King Tibetan 2a by ?inandagarbha the at colophon and is during life same year ä tantras Tibet. his places says ä and ca kri Order. Mahä.sMghika ýi%ranätha From a short that the 798 A. D. ) circa Vikramagila at that adds gzan nu dpal the into studied to Tibet. of of Buddhism I°iagadha, to who apparently (836 A. 7, ). we learn in tantras. yoga gone to exposition spreading to have belonged by 'Iiärangtha King Buddhaguhya's first the prevailed Anandagarbha a scholar that (740 brtsan lde sroi'i he had never apparently Annals Khri He also tantras. and yoga ca rya by Iring was invited Buddhagtahya in with acquainted well very ä, kri end of a work Sri Lanka) and was 'inandagarbha's Si$hala teacher. the into an sofa thams vol 77, that it ýbyui'i In connection with cad yogis su sbyon cad yons su sbyoii The colophon down (lag pas bris was written bzai gras is pot interesting the commentaries (Ts 2a3ff) in fact written down in was written were by Tibetans: to Buddhaguhya attributed the in they although and renowned -accordance ro] i sbyin by form with introduction dge sltin ahi to 'As for the as the teachers, commentary is po. most of (hbru ýarel) that said teaching Buddhaguhya's bzati then ovm commentary Indian it then A. D. ) discussing his basic oldest, hin name of of attributed two suggests commentary the of spreading second cho ga and (p'o`i'. des ba bya cho ga $ä the Chen gi sreg Vajravarman's te) Irin Sarva- he has translated Tantra, Tso$ kha pa (1357-1419 that Tantra our that says them were to note of to is the during Eilchor gyi an extended presumably ba tsa this bahi dkyil ba'h' No 3459 and 3460). It it Tibet. lo the of rite known and renowned best the A. D. ) who was a leading 11'Ianson thams works: No 3462): translators Tibetan bzaA po8(958-1055 of Buddhism 77, (T. T. vol durga. tiparikodhana Of all wrote homa on the work a short perhaps it or perhaps (? the in teaching taken down by ba lo tsa Jay the accordance with akggita) was Säntigarbha. known the ;Ial bahi that for the as As commentaries of assertion (T. (T. ba brjid T. vol 76, '_,o 3454) T. snaý3 vol 76, i.;o 3455) and Gzi sGroonma by the were written Tibetans at 76, I'o by the buted r ýn SG-ras times of to 7nanda arbha. attributed vol the 3453) to the wh ich li is which ram<r1a Iýlyvii of the early As for said to the to Central it religious the appears that they were made by school (spar chos grva) and commentary have been written rrra s, the Lo tsa (viz Vajra-varman). was attributed ' c-n; 7,nandagarbha, teacher 7nanda ba of As for -, rbha, (Yul Province known as mDzes rgyan9(T. by Vajravarman, rG an gaA in the that Lower commentary was written dbus pa) it T. was done ?Ten and attri- known as s: Tan ba, by a certain and attribute? to '. nanda- 4 '1o 1 It garb" of these is these the a brilliantly on the from differed to the say about the five the Buddhas this world to order ma lna). and good horses wild is the teaching trained are grades Kämadhenu ! Iah of knew how to goes on to grasp recite infallible teaching, taught, its subject this are laukika) world two kinds: of phenomenal to relating living fitting for dkyil the the associated the with The matýdalas of home. rite the world for the are beyond each max ala the of basic the world r endala `; fought o beyond of our is lokottara), Tantra ilightenment(for Pa.Acalas the nor knew it. the j (glen was Lord, the raising The actual text the those of of two kinds, (lokottara). The homa rites them from detach 2) the homa the mandala arvavit description the rites for and abhicära different the of people Tantra for with the it of dead so as to designed fact intellect. where entourage. rebirths; and so save them from evil your Rites- (viz agnti" peu b vaäya" beings. mandalas hkhor, the entourage excellent as like in it introduction explains and by the Teacher and those 1) reality the Just people knew it, recited in different of to him two parts: into for people. for and feeble West neither Tantra is half by many different in of Thus it Kofialas appears but yäna), average The introduction and homa rites. macdalas contains by the matter the of whole (mdo b6ad). actual the a= so people According each permeated He taught examples. give people the divides with In Säkyamuni Tantra. this tradition was possible categories methods. the Doctrine methods, sharp, teaching, text and the of the of and the Buddha uhya the people, actually had the a those the -teach by different it the different to Commentators pa) ages world to to be taught by different categories 11 the Cod Vimalamaniprabl. that he taught three (rtsod 'vehicle' have for which flower. The Buddha discord perfect necessary the commentary udumbara Dharma. age of the his as the by one single it adjust the In people discord of is Tantra Tantra. to the teach some of what this of as seldom to age which subdue are world ways in to briefly introduction world appears eigs evilslý the it that indicated the of version thus are especially commentary already that Translators. Tibetan matter in the Sanskrit describe subject in appear fourth the to mentions age one Buddha the work known to world piece an early may be interesting Buddhas of and I have they and that Sanskrit Vajravarman's of It from concerned. basis that Mmadhenu in are detailed was written that explanations one has no doubt Tsofi kha pa, great translations teachers Indian the of assertions commentaries of have the trust ; neatly not one should commentaries'. these works appears certainly Despite all that beneJ.s purposes. called in the of rtsa bahi centre is this mandala 11 p 168ff). see Part III9 and the homa on the to prevent karma Tlightenment. the karma beings for Great world Kings ) .Zä^ß. is the of and the the worldly i the '.'The mGndala of the Great Gods snakes. s in over evil the of translated the The basic The mandala Yamäntaka) They are are taught the and of and Hind. The teaching and dharmakäya Such are In subject Tantra. worldly They are is and serpent the convert in for the evil The ma.; dala spirits. Tlansions Pak atra) for is pacifying; is mahädeva) is to order his the cause in Those of Va'ra wrathful his desire by wrathful appearance Tharmamudrg and Speech. the with Ta-th9gata in the unbelievers. associated the with i a'amilyt for and with abandoning Padma paci- 76, vol -1. different parts of Val ap for (T., rgyan sake and of by Vairocana given associated is Ten Directions as sTTafi bahi Four Amitayus, family, Krodh Sanay&mudra to abandon ones sambhogak .ya, nirn their akäya, respectively. the efforts any event, of taught gods are taught is is with to order is mandala the UýSni; as of associated in known as the powerful the of The man ala the 13hairavas of . This is what Thiddhagixhya says. commentary it ones. the by dDati phyug rgyal mtshan, associates the Three Buddha Families, the three Mudräs with recommended. world. spirits. desire. there Lunar Eight Mahämudrä and Body. the the pacifying of the Tantra Tanntra. the of living of wicked spirits of Family, wrath. for evil thousands of is The mangala it. Guardians appearance controlling The mandala Speech and i"sind. nala to of everlasting on behalf the for law the of wrathful destroying Time Divinities. =U0 3454), Body, hundred his designed and the Cakravartin of Gandharvas, the die to act devised attached of is rraiia) ina; nspicious the the controlling ining co--itrol . The author of pacifying Planets venom of fying who are in ma Bala are is URiVas obstructions order for difficulties overcome the ni In designed The mandala for Eight is and those divinities. recommended the world for death. Rites, (laukika) this of the ones in Four Va.jrap of sudden Vajränalärka of The mai alas the the compassion with As people allays The mandala help of destinies. evil associated them to manJala which preventing by means of The mar4ala of mandala be used. must to be used is the continues, in Thus the continuation are mandalas may be performed rites way to The other this no doubt of these Tantra. that the the commentators stereotyped The divisions mandalas to explain categories help the to purpose introduce us are clear made by Buddhaguhya and the homa rites are of the core of this to and our - 12 (iv) in I have editions provided The English drawn upon materials those especially to help of the establish Version B wherever to provide critical because task the text quantity impracticable, but very modern The Sanskrit text as listed available there were no commentaries to able was difficult correct the upon Where the that be said inspiring the because especially in occur to note to those to notes amongst the that to largely Sanskrit of the same kind in Version B, the them. Apart on from been III) as these comparatively in and their have may not provided occur Part Commentators meaning has also in descriptions, of been the in Part A (see Version there is to literal a translation several passages, straightforward. the It will one, seem which mostly form. think I mudrä) is It must reliable passages which relevant corresponding example p 150 ff and disagreement manifest the entirely not this I reason in either Sanskrit interpretation It very gestures translators of the for A Tibetan almost Sanskrit. & III). For interpretations. clear of Version the themselves, unfortunately here rely a mnemonic II two and I was through those at or of use is translators p 85 ff, example Whenever the descriptions abbreviated for corrupt had to Sanskrit reading; was too text in only the the In editing translation remain Tibetan to be preferred, restoring or written highly -text I have Tibetan was corrupt one more through and meaningful Sanskrit text B (see pages the to that those is B for problems produce manuscripts the of A. passages. incomprehensible certain Version therefore mantra and the confidence, this to adding the all help the the diverge, Version of thus to make a considerable in two Versions of a correct reading mistakes such rendered has been Version of those able which few exceptions with to have been deciding basis either to partly have been made available on the commentaries used, have would English, and with referring translation Tibetan that do so because many scribal in Tantra edited I have been in commentaries the such works the to parallel, equivalents. intention was to establish it and the main Bibliography with times run my of intention my primary Versions because of the together translations work order been my intention texts Tibetan this has been in the all of in interpretations with has not for mainly number to assist It I have B, but have been used correspond. B The commentaries, notes. them used interpretation limited 12 editions the two Versions Version and of Version of the A and also editions Tibetan Tso$ kha pa Version of A for Version a.n and of textual that is given in of the vast a comprehensive text translation Vajrravar A and B in Versions of available of who Tantra. of Sanskrit. to the Per presentation as of be noticed deduce case, available the that whole in case 13 of difficulties textual and by agreement work is therefore less and somewhat us with provide lary. with related thub North pa), reliable Sanskrit At the Version A, although Vajravarmants name occurs names of one interesting the they Sanskrit commentary in required ones. same time the divinities Tibetan the name of materials MSS Sanskrit technical and all the exception, The whole Tantra. solid context the vocabu- Buddha of Centre The comprises: set of (Pan thams cad yofis su Fast Sarvadurgatipari4odhanaräja so$ , (S S(Rin tog), West amuni South - Ratnaketu po the po), by (Me tog eher rgyas). listed They Vikasitakusuma never are B (hence we do not have them in Sanskrit) and only once in Version the largely using all name in come upon in reconstruction, the northern quarter (Kun ri Sarvavit rral passages the elsewhere by the required reading one of I may mention sbyo$ bal; i the I have accepted translations, and Tibetan cannot which NSS Sanskrit by available be settled a mantra. are basic Sarvavit to referred equvalent (T. T, vol mandala. constantly of Me tog 76, eher To 3453, in the rgyas p 138-3-7) only commentaries. once, where namely the I have in Sanskrit 14 TIJd SLATION OF THE TANTRA CHAPTER I SC J INTRODUCTORY la (la) OM Homage to Thus have delight of with kamalas and leaves resounding lb with flutes and Apsaras assembled in fidence), Mind), Anantamati(Infinite Mind), Mahämati(Great greatly of leaders, the were Mind), the Great he was honoured, the gods, of millions, with hundred thousand millions Mind), highly Ma.ho- Bodhi- Great of Con- Inspiring 15 Samantamati(Entire Kamalamati(Lotus Mind), Mind), Vividhamati(Diversified Good). and the By such unlimited Non-returning revered, praised, 10 many Kinnaras, Being Pratibhänamati(Great Beings and goddesses Gandtiarvas, Mind), Buddhas Vidyädharas, Garuj. as, and Samarntabhadra(Al1 which instruwith musical äakra, Brahms and the rest Asuras, ti(Divine Dim many ornaments, with thousands of 5 mah'amändaravas. by all Asamantamati(Bouteous the midst of the company of great of Mahäbrahm7a throne and entered (Elimination of into and converging rays durgatipariäodhana radiating numerous Destinies) ting of the lements. Every completely Having ambulations three beings living from came out thousand were freed the great one individually Evil of the and un- Bodhisattvas worshipped, 20 and Great (worlds) the of the bonds grove of of known as Three The universe eyes. was illuminated and the was fulfilled who is Succession from illumination a garland Bodhisattva his lotus known as Sarva- Forthwith Destinies). the down on the concentration between thousand he sat entourage Uninterrupted hair-tuft by that his a stage-of All. from yasantativimokgaka(Rescuer Evil all other herbs, kinds, all of extolled. In Z Apsaras, Vipu lammati(Broad Mind), Mind), Mind), (2a)hosts bounded eight Mahäsattva Aca lamati(Immovable Afiesamati(Complete hundreds of with embelished reverberating the bound by creepers mändaravas, was honoured It and all groups Bodhisattva namely there. Yakggas, RAk; asas, of trees, birds, of and with flowers Many gods, Brahmä Nägas and so forth, sattvas, 2a Sakra, with ragas, groups of highest the a grove, trees clusters a okas, kalDa with themselves Bodhisattvas, groups of with bakulas, in was staying and gold, and so forth. (lb) were disporting different of warbling drums, jewels was bedecked It Lord was adorned kargikäras, and utpalas, and so forth. ments, - at gods. It the the one time I heard all branches Vajrasattval Glorious 26 consis- by him, and mental defi- of delight was illuminated. worshipped one hundred with multitudes thousand times, of different having paid honours, having respects with made circumbowed heads, 30 15 2b and having down on the sat Hail Buddha, Hail Buddha the hail in seat spotless are the of they Lord, (2b) said: Dharma of Buddha's purity whose deeds front perfect? And why? freed We are And we are Then Indra by the destinies path 3a are It is The Lord '0 Indra, red the Perfect boundless Indra, the dance with the with action tation, does not to dence act The Lord Indra to all the and was born said: for of to be known. is limitlesE acqui- By the Lord Buddha Buddhas 15 endowed are unparalleled 0 Therefore, living beings beings is living beings Let the where accor20 accordance in is no hesi- be here there in is in Tath$gata's seat, 'May the Lords the twelve where '0 Indra, '0 this Indra, great hell thousand knowing the of died the 0 Blessed the time, right this years. There Thereafter me the to hopes. 0 Lord, and fell from Is ability and great copious inspiring give 26 confi- protection, seven this he experiencing days assembly happiness have of 30 or Ond. ' time is and occasion the iprabha god Vii Av! ci. give offered sympathy, all was he born? explain is Lord to have beings, (3b) once more and to fulfil 0 Lord, '0 Lord, said: in on behalf action no situation his living 0 Lord, this, said: The Lord suffering up from compassion, Gods. Explain living of the have aspiration. of have Buddhas endowed with benefit on behalf This is the a god named Vimalamaziprabha Thirty-three sorrow? for 10 Buddhas(3a) 0 Indra, unlimited. unparalleled the exist'. this great since passed 4a There do good for with the resolution. getting and said action are in Buddhas Lord perfect Lord The Lord vessels. Buddhas Buddhas the no uncertainty. worship, Lord the is Buddhas the unlimited. 0 Indra, possess be converted; their Then Indra, 3b the of to with convert the The Lord Buddhas recipient; person accordance of the evil all One'. 0 Blessed for wonder are which complete. Vigour The Lord the are rays 0I dra, of merit. masses knowledge. powers. not from and established wonderful, a great have been made worthy converts magical is is worshipped be freed we should Buddha's it 0 Lord, this Buddhas the of good qualities wisdom. 'The unparalleled with to gems of that it times, thousand one hundred Lord wonderful, immeasurable of unlimited to said: source means of the Path. Bodhisattva illumination of liberation? the on the '0 Lord, how is him: complete accumulated well evil established to 5 destinies, circumambulated this him and said from he will he will occasion, (4a)has you will hear 0 Blessed one., fallen experience experience from acute it'. here and fierce 16 in suffering born the of one who is totally in succession ption the apirite, he will suffer for four eighty abandoned for thousand to one suffering (4b) uninterruptedly produce harm to others. various deeds. Furthermore He will he will thousand of be abused be no interru- will he will of cause by his obstructions a continuance experience 5 plague, Hs will Nbreover another. ten have sixty years. raae. There from for destructiveness low and of being he will people, and foolish, by the be afflicted blood, by many people, Thereafter deaf, speechless, he will of years. among border born being Tears. snd flow leprosy, thousand and tormented animals Thereafter ten for hell Thereafter nature years. 4b the ssongst thousond lesser the 10 various sufferings. Thereupon Sa kra gods, all and the on hearing rest, this were anxious, faces. Getting down on their terrified, up they raids upset, and they fell 10 One, how can he be saved from such a succession Lord, ® Blessed of suffering? How can he be freed from The Lord saidi8 Indra, I too teach that more adored the and mahämIndäravas, (5a) once of aindIravas kinds, of bejewelled with crown, bracelets, Lord (he continued): from beings I request this of world the good 0 Blessed the path case by eighty of triple evil those who are of huasn beings. for explanation born of the uneurpassible into the release the and _ by which heavenly the others means there future beings and perfect realm of benefit of all of exists and 'goo' and happithe future 25 0 Lord, the who hear or into pearls. his saids6ood lhlightenment gods 20 many different him by saying gladdened gods, B! rebirth the kinds, all and strings neoklaoes earrings, tiaes, bowed down before thousand be explained it of of ornaments and with stated of assemblies One, let many flowers its gods, and for the three destinies: evil of including only, and how one obtains of a well succession Once more the from which was taught with him nay hundred Be oirauabulated 0 Lord, good 0 Blessed Onel. Having saidifiood ness suffering? Buddhas, so listen; million Than _ 5a accumulation 15 Save o Lord, save One, o Blessed four the release the in the name the realm 30 17 MMTT S preliminary mantras and the Bam, into entered häna(Empowerment4 r$dhiV Sakra, (5b) Lord Thegthe 5b the of the stage the by means of rest in Vajra) Infallible known as Amo . to empower the gods, concentration of of spell order the all Tathffgatas. OSTTHE PLEDGE OF THE VAJRA-E1PO1 ERN] TT HUN. thus Having into entered thera-empowerment with Tatas unsurpassable, PURIFIER, PURIFIER 5 empowered the he uttered spell of the Destinies): Evil of All Sarvadurgatiparigodhanaräja(King-Purifier called OBI PURIFIER which is concentration of a stage and having OF ALL SINS, PURE PURE MOST PURE IN RESPECT OF THE OBSTRUCTIONS OF ALL ACTS SV7J As soon as he uttered were checked, severe minated, 6a Then again 0M PURIFIER Again the it evil PURIFIER, 0 Indra, Again 0 Indra, destinies another another spell of evil life animal secreý was elibecame happy. (6a) spirits spell: OF ALL LIVING the all beings 10 beings living of all and tormented and many living removed another destinies BEINGS HIJ1J 15 Tathägatas: 1 PHAT. 'HUI; one, the spell subordinate the of spell of all 0M TR; T. Again pröduoes hell, PURIFY ALL EVILS OF ALL EVILS 0 Indra, Tathägatas: were he pronounced the formula, into approach sufferings 0 Indra, OTI PURIFIER Again every this another yet another liberation of spell living for one, effortlessly beings RUDI destinies: elimination evil of all in brief, even by the mere act of `rdiidfulneaj the in to order endowed with little cause the pacification of all merit: 0T! HOMAGETO THE LORD SARVADURGATIPARISODHANARXJA, THE TAT TA, THE ARRMT, THE PERFECT BUDDHA, 25 and again: 0M PURIFIER PURIFIER, PURIFIER OF ALL SINS, PURE PURE MOST PURE IN RESPECT OF THE OBSTRUCTIONS OF ALL ACTS SVIX} 6b This Mantras of is the the basic (6b) formula, Buddhas? 05 OMNISCIENT ONE PURITY AND DESTROYALL OBSTRUCTIONSHUI PHAT 04 OM[JISCIENT ONE HOT; i 01I OT1II SCI1 T ONE HRIJJ PRAT OM OMt1ISCIFNT ONE All 30 18 ON OMISCIENT ONE TRX1KTRAT Or 0 ONE OM ISCIENT OM 0 1ICSII T CNE DHI1 SCIENT QJE }1U15 01 01 5 01$OI'tISCIENT ONE KRIM TRAT Goddesses of the Offerings8 teas of the Eight OBI OMNISCIENT ONE THE GREAT VAJRA-BOF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF GIVING HITS Mantra 0[ of the goddess Läsyä(Love-play). OMNISCIENT ONE THE GREAT VAJRABORN WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION 10 OF MORALITY TRAM Mantra of the goddess M11ä (Garland). 01K OMNISCIENT ONE THE GREAT VAJRA-BORN WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF FORBEARANCE HRI{i Mantra of the goddess 15 Gitä(Song). OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE GREAT VAJRABOAT WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF VIGOUR AV Mantra of the goddess Nrttä(Dsnce). Or OI+d+TISCIENTONE PURIFIER OF ALL EVILS, KINDLE KINDLE, THE WORSHIP 20 OF THE PERFECTION OF MEDITATION HUM.MM PRAT Mtraa 7a of OAKO1 ISCIENT the goddess Dha%(Incense). ONE PURIFIER OF ALL EVIL OF MAJOR AND MINOR DEFILEMENTS, PE DESTINIES, (7a) IVER OF THE FLOWER,THE WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF WISDOM TRAM iii Mantra of the goddess DESTROYER PRAT 25 Pucpä(Flower). OYJOMNISCIENT ONE PURIFIER OF ALL EVILS, PRODUCEROF THE PERCEPTION OF KNOWLEDGE,THE WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF ASPIRATION HRI? HIT PRAT Mantra of 09$ 0 1ISCIENT Di ä Lamp) ._ ONE DESTROER OF ALL EVIL the goddess SCENT, THE VAJRA-SCENT WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF 1IEANS AV HuV PHAT Mantra mamma of the goddess Gandhi of the Four Guardians 30 (Scent). of the Gates 07$ OMNISCIENT ONE THE EVOCATOR FROM THE GATES OF HELL HUM.JAV PHAT Valrinpk: uia (Va j ra-gook) . 07 OMNISCIENT ONE THE RESCUER FROM HELL 1T7 HU7 PHA!' Mantra Mantra of of Va ra äia(Vajra_Nooae) 35 19 EVILS OF ALL BONDS THE FROM DELIVERER ONE THE OMNISCIENT OM Mantra V& ra of Old O1 ISCIENT 7b hoja(Vajra-Fetter). ONE THE PURIFIER DESTINIES(7b) iii VAM PRAT HUT44 OF IMPENETRABLE DARKNESS OF ALL EVIL WV PHA 5 Mantra of Va räveäa(Vajra_Penetration). Mantras of the Sixteen Bodhisattvas Obi HAIL TO THE CGINVEYOROF BENEVOLENCE Mantra OBI INFALkBLE Mantra Mai treya. of of INFAiTBLE BEHOLDER HUM OASDESTROYER OF ALL EVILS, PURIFIER Mantra of 10 Amoghadarfiin. OF ALL EVILS HUM. Sarräpäyajaha? OM 0 MIND REMOVING ALL DARKNESS OF SORROWHUNS Mantra Sarvagokatamonirghätanamati. 0 OM LORDLY ELEPHANT HUB Mantra of of 15 Gandhahasti. OM HEROIC PERFORMER HUM Mantra of S1rrarggama. OZ HEAVEN HEAVEN-EFFULGENCE H[T;'I Mantra of 20 Gaganagafija, Obi INTELLIGENT ONE POSSESSED OF KNOWLEDGEIJI Mantra of JSänaketu. OI RADIANCE OF IMMORTALITY, POSSESSED OF IMMORTALITY HITV 1 Mantra of Am'taprabha OM ABODE OF THE M00N, HAIL TO THE BEHOLDER OF THE ? X1 Mantra of 25 Candraprabha. OM AUSPICIOUS ONE, THE PROTECTOR OF FORTUNATE-ONES Mantra 8a of Bhadra a, ' Obi TRACERY GREAT TRACERY (OF LIGHT) Mantra of OM ADAM $TINE (8a) NUN Jäliniprabha. 30 ESSENCE v. &N Mantra of Vajragarbha. 01K.UNDECATINGONE HUM "q , HAIL TO THE IINDECAYINGREMOVEROF KARMAOBSTRUCTIIis Mantra of AkgaZ! Mti. 35 20 HAIL TO THE AUDACITY-FC7RWIOST Oft AUDACITY, Mantra Pratibhgnaldu'ta. of OBI ALL-GOOD HUZ Mantra Samantabhadra. of the These are them in recite mantras the of Bodhisattva of 5 One should Good Age. the due order. MERITS ARISING FROM THE PRACTICE OF THIS TEACHING day at dawn with regularity and acts as taught, following in the of to the He who meditates an effort making 8b it tantra the with produce highest order divine process yoga three its with durga. tipariSodhanaräja, an dp ngWn8rssic'writes on the forms of tight themNIala, to quite hell if even in and reborn tion in the the gatas. All family of all 0 Indra, in and the world them, assemblies the of teaching they the they are do not the head sins in on the may be, 20 Räk a$sas, Pretas, (9a) placed in being Yakgas, they are freed instantly there, reborn they give atten- 25 become Non-reThey also . the family the Tathäof all in happiness in the assembly of somewhere else. experience all benefits mea- destinies. evil experience the the no evils and they in in arise removed or or 15 ma 4ala their after born name, retains deaths and meditate Tathägatas are Sarva- on the spell ! lägas, been its 10 of stages untimely destinies in hells, the all top lrnot into consecrated Having the Those who enter fall they merely eight and Tathägata hears evil whatever say, reborn gods. of Tathägatas brief, of may be, are certain; obstructions the signs will have been is then pronounce to nor either to men, women, gods, of they progress the it, needless it all and so forth essential their turners; tieq they in daughter son or or Whoever dead bodies those animals, death approach will Whatever to consecrated mantra, any kind neck, dreams. who are the of the related in even way, ning of dreams any noble down and it arm or about life this if conformity emanation, destinies. evil concentration, such a one succeeds in eliminating PFurthermore, (8b) for 0 Indra, this of the spell as secret or 9a every in gods or and happiness of this the world 30 above. THE S7iDHANA (EVOCATION )12 Then Indra 10 Lord, of the to those with circumambulated the explain supreme their the and perfect who are subjected existence for Doctrine for the Lord to turning the power away as previously, sake of ailightenment worshipped in of attaining order all evil easily to bring destinies, the benefit him and said: realisation and happiness and in accordance 21 9b of all (9b) beings living Thus the Lord from entered (Vajra navajra and suitable 10a all the the syllable throat; of the the the dissolves into to pronounce be able (Likewise A syllable bra-hands. He is it of his resolutely Wrathful lOb the thumbs raised bra-fist the at the the in seat a solitary he should scent nairlt by means of disc (10a) on its petals; it. of his in 10 by means VAJRA-TONGUE; He sas: the worship ) of He should . vajr/a-tongue the it he should heart endowed with He says: 0JI GRASP VAJRA- Wrathful Terintiri15 Peaking the his mind, wrathful thus the He says: he should vaj ra-bond (This above it. armed himself Vajra- hold is the gesture with the armour the right he should va ra-fist 25 of) of the destroy left all obstructions. Next He should ýSn he should burn fingers Next lla the of he says: BLAZE, KILL, 1a V inside comprised by applying obstructions 0t4 VAJRXNALA exclaim: HUI1 PHAT. The gesture blazing 20 recalling 0M VAJRAJVAI1NALAt1KA HUM. Placing exclaim: 15 HU1I. and making (the gesture of) (lob) of the va ra-garland. together TUV, Having and waving syllable and he becomes with HIJMCOPN SECRATE I"Ir,. Making 0I the white the valra-thumb. consecration joined from entourage. of) half-bra-posture the hands from hands pervade with his gestures13 gesture he should He says: two syllables these his of make(the and closely Vajra-Terintiri. 5 a lotus vajra protective obtain ON VAJRAJV7,LATdAL7,7Ir his palms Terintiri he should Terintirl Evil evocation. of as Va rajvälänalärka HHIi (he conceives) between the conceive4 in disc to make all able palms Then sitting All Removes selflessness and he becomes a five-tipped the PLEDGE HUI1 VAPI. He should in the on top vajra a lunar into Then he should bra-bond lunar tongue arises) and on top dissolves that mantras. there The vajra his known as pleasant with himself Aa syllable concentration and comfortable syllable Hü1I a five-tipped syllable vajra the manner perceived conceive HUB by means of by means of its a circle Then having d aarmas, he should of Knowledge of down on a soft sits offerings. a stage expounded Delineating place. five the yogin ' known as Sarvatathägata-Sarvadurgatipari- mandala The Säkya-Lord the First, with the and explain fiodhanatejoräja. into amuni Sarvadugatiyariäodhanajff Destinies), destinies. evil gesture of Va ränala. CONSUME, CONVULSE, BREAK, BATTLE the vajra-thumb (. a) vajra-bond,, is the the raised in the OM VAJRANETRT BIND ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS, He applies sture and binds all thums and holds them evenly. the He makes the obstructions. This is the gesture of va ra bond, Vajranetri. stretches middle the of ge- the 35 22 the placing the Applying he should a fire-brand hooks. This is hold the gesture Once more by means of bond beneath, of the like He says on the with the thumbs Va rofq! of his of and the forefingers bind The should or bind the DRUIM.iie should just the in This a point. same quarter is This the thumbs which 18 and the parted western the are the fingers destroy the intermediate He should bind the northern the the the he makes into wall. bra-fists výj! nýVictor the Vajradik put va j ra-bon d the is in and above the is the quarters Be sayss rä is the made with 25 V&LRA- Hh sayss0! quarter. southern Val of gesture and raises the the of gesture to-fists the The makes . Va= is made by means of Vairahumkära. and forms over a vajra with the of his a va ra with into forefingers Threefold Vajrakarma forefingers is 30 World). This is saying: HIJM. little arms; the a point the fingers known as ZCLJo- gesture of V kära. The gesture 20 and then together VAJRAKARMA. He sayssH11 enclosure hooks bind by means of 194ala enclosing Be says Vajrapatäkä. hillock. an arched The iruior He binds of gesture He binds arms VajrapäUa. of are VajrakälT of he should Vajraäikhaxä like the by means of Vajrakli. quarter RUT MAT. The gesture (12a) heart. the at placed WT with 15 of quarters. OM VAJRAK L! With make a knot Va j rapatäkä below obstructions Vajro9qi9a. of gesture banners. made like are like together gesture forefingers the the vajra-fists the by means of of the linked is quarter. by applying gesture quarter crossed, little He should than proje- eastern place fingers little the 0t4 FLYING VAJRAPAR'U1 FIATTER. The gesture shaped forefingers the bind should a(llk)he made into the Zgra-fists. by means of ftKHAId a form is and the Bs says: HI11 VAJRAPASA HRTti. He should Va= firmly make a new Vag of outstretched bowed head with Once more he should l2a he should Vespa of gesture 01$ DRUZ BIND W crown and in 5 made 10 gesture either a chain forefingers the tusks. With llb the then like Vajrabhairavanetra. of the above. and waving head with the VAJRAYAKýA i1TM.The gesture sayingsOM vairs"-afliali cting the vajra. -fists them above bind he should Vajrabhairavanetra of gesture bind he should ground MR ME, PROTEOT ALL SV1FA. BTtu BUL47E I PAAT.Binding He sayest' into vajra-bond outstretched Hs eayss07$ VAJRA BE FI14 beneath. on the like and the the middle above one except fingers. for forming .. 35 23 the By applying make the he should Mira-bond He says: VAJRA- vmra-network. BOND Vq. the Vajracakra Then with 12b HUr. IRCLE i'A9 -."**ys=O! and he makes the vajra-. bond with the forefinger (12b) Sarvadurgatipariäodhsris: the ma448 a of Binding the vaira-fists finger. little the calas. clockwise at it circles he recites to access all in all directions. times the it with and touching the Vajracakra as though flowers ground and the the with Making rest. five his body he gains that 10 manifest actually in prostrations of parts gesture and gazing By means of mantra. the aauýal,a face his 5 man- this by motioning to it Holding the all of producer comes about ma$4alas ma];W all he worships of the eight the known as Vajracakra, is This The projection in gesture him before cause to arise he should directions all he saystOr OMNISCIENT ONE I MAIS THE VAJRA-BOND WITH THE OBEISANCE OF BODY, SPEFXHAND MIND. Pour 13a obeisances He should make the He should bow towards in out stretched the four obeisances the eastern vajra--afijali following the in his with quarter 15 wayst body(13a) whole He says: OM I OFFER MYSELF FOR posture. THE SERVICE OF WORSHIPPING ALL THE TATHXGATAS.VAJRASATTVA OF ALL THE TATHäGATAS EMPOWERME. Getting the vajra-afljali up he places forehead he should bow towards his with Ott OIIIISCIENT to the his direction. southern the touching heart, ground 20 Hi says: ONE I OFFER MYSELF FOR THE CONSECRATI(21 OF WDRSHIP. VAJRARATNA OF ALL THE TATBXGATAS CONSECRATEME. Getting a$jali up he should on his placed bow towards the head and touching quarter western the ground with the with his face vajra- he says: 25 OFFER MYSELF FOR THE A&ANCEMENTOF WORSHIP. VAJRADHARMA OF ALL THE TATH1GATAS PROMOTEME. 0M OMNISCIENT ONE I Getting 13b at his O?!iISCI heart up he lowers the he should bow(13b) IJT ONE I frog vajra-aßijali towards the his head and placing northern saying: quarter, it or OFFER MYSELF FOR THE ACT OF WORSHIP,VAJRAKAHRA' OF ALL THE 30 TATHIGATAS ACTIVATE ME. Confession of sine down on the Kneeling heart he should Bodhisattvas, in the confess by all Tathägata, all confess sins the Vajra, in the all ground and making sinsiNay gods of the va j re-ati j al i mudräs, spells, mantras, Ratna, Padma, and Karma Faailies. presence of by all I be remembered all the Buddhas gesture the Buddhas and formulas, I, of at his and who abide such and such vajra, and Bodhisattvas, 35 24 in the in who abide 14a of presence the the all gods of mudAs, SrE akas, the Holy Ones, the Accomplished not setting the Lord not to motion Buddhas into pass Twentyfold in the the assemblies Ones, and of all the Lord Buddhas in the ten directions beings. I beseech all the fully shall the Buddhas of the past, present, and future, A Buddhas, Prat*eka Bodhisattvas, as, and of every merit of ten in the directions, residing enjoy in I Families. Karma Padma, Ratna, and ata, Tat (14a) all living and formulas, mantrae, spells, Wheel of in it not the who desire directions ten to Doctrine 5 of who are I beseech motion. Consumation Final parinirvän 10 worship Then binding flower the saysOM OMNISCIENT ONE he should gesture THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF FLOWER-WORSHIP HUT!. the Binding incense say: OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCUR- he should gesture RENCE OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF INCENSE-WORSHIP HUT!. the Binding lamp he should gesture OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCUR- say: O 15 RENCE OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF LIGHT-WORSHIP HJI1. (14b) Binding 14b the scent say: Oi OMNISCIENT ONE THE he should gesture CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF SCENT-WORSHIP HIT!!. together Joining the say: OM OMNISCIENT ONE he should hands cupped THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP WITH THE JEWEL 20 Q4 OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCE ORNAMENTSOF THE ENLIGHTENMENT FACTOR ". OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF THE SUPREMEWORSHIP WITH LAUGHTER,LOVEHUTL0M. OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCE PLAY, PASSION, PLAYFULNESS AND BLISS OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF THE SUPREMEWORSHIP WITH THE STREAMERS HUI!. Then remembering beings he should of compassion of all =), of 15a matt beings, for of those liberated, the and for taking liberation who are the the raise for of = sorrows karma. audrä make the he should living the all inert, Thought those for of retrieving of Lord the the for Enlightenment who are not realm for of of the the those living power liberation crossed(the free, emancipation whole By the Vajrasattva. who have not those across of (15a) the of 25 by living as experienced ocean encouragewho are beings not 30 from samsära. He says: O? OMJI SCI 2T ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING 21 OF THE CLOUD-MASS THE WORSHIP OF THE VAJRA-THOUGHT OF ENLIGHTENMENT Hrfl the ocean of Making provided with OM OMISCIENT the gesture every of Läsyä assistance he should and with all says1bay the all living attainments beings gained be by mere wish, ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF THE GREAT VAJRA-BORN WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF GIVING HUM. 36 25 the Making from gesture of Mä1ä he should the confinements and mind. May they be endowed free all I sayskay of with the karma all the of beings living all body, speech, inauspicious conditions of become karma the of auspicious body, speech, and mind. O?! OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF MORALITY WHICH INDUCES SUPREME 15b (15b) ENLIGHTENMENT HUM. the Making bodies endowed with free in gesture fear from heart of major GTtä he should and minor and hatred with and eye, and being 1 saytkay living beings possess and marks may they always be auspicious to regard to attentive all one another, the 5 their showing delight Dha md. OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE 10 CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUDMASS OF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF FORBEARANCEWHICH ALERTS ONE TO THE GREAT AND SUPREME HUM. * JDHARMA Making the gesture living beings he should sayiý. 7 all of Nrtýä embark the upon Bodhisattva does not path, ý. abandon on Buddhahood, concentrate adhere to Vigour that OM OMNISCIENT (1 E THE CCNCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING 15 OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF VIGOUR THAT DOES NOT ABANDON SAMARA 1". Making 16a from free the all gesture major(16a)and liberation, mgeditation, of. LuRX he should sayt%ay May they defilements. minor concentration, all living beings be perfect in every learning intuitive-kmoledge, attainment, become 20 and powei?. )M OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTICl the Making gesture of OF MEDITATION, THE ABODE OF THE SUPREMEBLISS HJ1I. %y become DhüýI he should says living beings all endowed with wisdom and knowledge of this world and the world above, accomplished in four accurate in every discipline understandings, 25 educated and profession, in trained arts, endowed with yoga, gvod knowledge the knowledge-obstruction40M 16b character, that and secret destroys the all. the methods, perceiving defilement-obstructions essence, and OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE SUPRII E (16b) PERFECTION OF WISDOM WHICH DESTROYS FUNDAMENTAL DEFILEMENTS HUM. free Making the of evil`e: all gesture of DTp1L he should 30 say living all beings become OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF ASPIRATION, THE LIGHT OF KNOWLEDGE PURIFYING ALL EVILS Making free from all the HUM. gesture ignoranoe. of GandhA he should ýy says all living beings become Ot OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF THE VAJRA-SCENT WORSHIP OF THE PERFECTION OF MEANS DESTROYING ALL EVIL SCENT HUM. 35 26 In at order feet the the all of himself pay homage to Body he prostrates to in Taºthägatas directions. ten the in 6 devotion O1 OMNISCIENT OTTE THE C( CURRIIJCE OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE GIFT OF BODY BiJ1, 17a himself Be surrenders the hundred-tongue-mouth, 5 with(17a) offering a hymn in all directions I Incomparable unshakable) and so forth? saying: 7 OBI OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE GIFT OF SPEECH HII1I. the one-intention of the all arme by applying the sameness of the for He makes a supplication otj OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURRENCE 10 Bodhisattvas, OF TIM WAFTING OF THE CLOUDMASS OF WORSHIP OF THE GIFT OF MIND H(111. himself He surrenders are non-nature the sayingi4ll by emptiness, characterized dharsas whose true nature lack marks, and absence of is of OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE CONCURFMCE OF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD- involvemeni. 15 MASS OF WORSHIP OF THE GIFT OF SECRECY HUM. to Self-offering thus Having 17b himself: Great Compassionate bestow I offer Then he should ) By the of merit:. in in misfortunes all this may they all source this of beings merit may all Best May I also liberate the as the ment, I commit living of myself virtous disposed minds sources 25 of merit of the world. of maturation of the Three the to dha s, and the today I will the 30 the study of moral and perfect their and supreme threefold practice fix Times highest supreme of acts determination Thought of the morality, Enlightenaccu- benefit that 35 beings. Beginning the the resolutely blessings Enlightenment so do I raise(18a) on Ealightenment, from obtain Dharma for the benefit by many sufferings. oppressed Perfeot Lords and well the sources become free abovve. May they happiness the in the beings make a vow for Ealightenmentijust mulating in maturation 28 beings of Men. By means of become Buddha, and teach 20 participate living world May they pledge of merit to May the and everywhere. great roots living above. With world living the and the world become Buddhas, the He should 18a in creatures the of he should and Bodhisattvas. Buddhas me always(17b) accept may I also Dow for the all kinds twenty of praises accomplishment cause and the world the to Protectors living of and Bodhisattvas with myself me the upon Participation Buddhas worshipped offer also the all Buddhas, the from precious take and supreme the Three vow which Jewels: arises in union BuddhaDharma,, with and San" 9 27 In the In truth I will the offer grasp In the pure Family learn ment, I will fold the In the all-embracing SHaving raised completely beings, I will Envisaging the in open and hidden joyous pledge, the great Fhlighten- forn, and in its Thought and supreme those for acting who have not in who are I will 5 three- need of worship! Ealightenment, perse- benefit of restoration, tO living all liberate crossed, of acts of the truth in receive as I can the as well vow through those the those who are and establish, mandala Hail 15 the envisage properly, it worship he should Buddha, Hail You purify maqoala Buddha and saye: Ot1 OIVISCIENT the in space five the praise destinies evil the with Then he says: OM VAJRA-ARJALI; Making in which arises Karma Faaily, great highest the He should worship the across Then he should the the in Via: of and dthers. to my teacher. bell, of the great _, of restore beings vajra, vow, performing take liberated, living the hold I will Family (18b) gathering vering not Vajra great the Good Law in its form. vehicle 18b the of and the and . (abiding)in Family the _ proper of great , four gifts six times every day. the In I will gathering being Having offerings. good qualities whose acts are and bring of completed the Buddhas. perfect. Enlightenment he unfolds by gods worshipped the at to heart the all 20 creature;? v_aira-bond ONE, VAJR,AA-BONDTRAT gesture V of räve äa he says: OI$ VWR ABI DE, BE FIRM FOR ME, BE ETERNAL FOR ME, EMPOWERMY HEART, GRAFITME FULL SUCCESS HI3 !, HA HA HA HA HOV. 0M VAJRA-FIST Binding PURIFIER eins. 19a VAM. (the PURIFIER 25 gesture he saye: OM OIUSCIENT Sattv! majri of) DRAW OUT ALL SINS HUL4.This-is the (tiE for mantra drawing out (19a) He makes firmly he should move it have fallen; so it the quickly is bra-bond upwards. the and in This is the position beat of mode of the raising all sins. purifying Making firmly the výJra.. bond with four remaining gesture those who 30 said. OIL OMNISCIENT ONE PURIFIER OF ALL EVILS HIHI PBAT. This is and the vaj ones fixed OM OMNISCIENT ONE TRAT HITM.This the middle on i#he is the fingers causes an instant for eradicating mantra the mantra placed on the face eradication all for evil of destini; sins. 3. 28 Bind of)Sattvavajr! gesture g(the (he says)sO a lunar Next the disc arises syllable (this it A and above the in the is OF ALL OBSTRUCTIONS MU1 PITH PHAT. This the of lifting of sign centre i OMNISCIENT ONE PURIFIER up. from heart yogin's SAGE SAGE GREAT SAGE SV[H. aantra)sOOi t'HE PERFECT SODHANARAJA, ARHAT, THE TATBIGATA, TIM TO SARVADURGATIPARI HOMAM 0 5 B[TDDHAi 19b OBI PURIFIER and again: ACTS SVIHX. Tbe Sarvadurgatipariäodhana IN RESPECT OF THE OBSTRUCTIONS OF ALL maz4al a becomes Then by means of leads nities), the ping Thus the magdala ma space becomes envisage and in cause become one, Erom his with Sä ya-Lion centre the of the them, Then worship- the In in ala centre the of heart his _maz in yoga, the accomplishuent divinities. its pledge- max4al appearing in the form of Cakravartin, lunar Myaxmmi he a visualize should of himself, A in the heart the to, enter it 10 divi- he suamons(the them and subdues binds plaoes), mantra. three)others and(the he should replete From the syllable disc their ala, two mazdalas he should Ya räphuýa them(into this by means of accomplished PURE PURE MOST PURE OF ALL SINS(l9b), PURIFIER, PJRIFIER lunar diso(this 15 SACS: SAGE GREAT mantra)s0I SAGE SVXBX, the karma.. mudrl Then with and he says: O 20a OMNISCIENT CNE VAJRA-CIRCLE (the Binding fingers middle gesture of) he should on his head his the garland his head saying: O11(VAJRA-)SATTVA He should the release mind 3J. (20a) 20 and taking Sattvavajri apply with a garland HJT . He should sayingsSAMAYA RECEIVE HOI. Next sayingtVAJRA the mag42 a, he projects -cause as bra. tie he should two the place it on MAHABALA RECEIVE IT. face-binding himself Vajrasattva sayingsOM opens 25 L0OK. HAIL VAJRA, the He vajre-eye. supreme eye, eyes. every your opens M[kyanun long he the for Lord look into the He should as sees as great maz}¢ala (the it he Sattvavajri Binding should release once more of) gesture today the at tion heart, from the vag and applying the vase blessed with the fist he should vaj He sayyss0r . give the . vat;; OM ISCIE -consecraT ONE ". 30 VAJRA CONSECRATE]ME. 20b Once again he should(20b) sealysemeans l&ve ! and others. , 0V OMiISCIE T ONE,VAJRADEITVISVARI I OBI OMNISCIENT ONE DAA OM O??ISCIENT AJVA RI I IiJ NE CONSECRATE TM CONSECRATEME REJOICE HOý gestures of Vajradhäty- ME CONSECRATE AJRMAV RBf! Hr311CONSECRATEME ONE KARMAVAJRI,lI OIL!V M. VM. rMI1 VAS the ME ! CONSECRATE (T OPINISCIENTONE VAJRAVAJRIIn! 0! i O! ISCIE2 T ONE RAIN of 35 29 the Endowed with the consecration with the bra. for to it the two syllables Today own va ra: you are armour his of is This -empowerment. he should of the . the sake of bra-succes receive by the Buddhas L You must there consecrated Baddhahood. complete tos YOU YOU ARE OAKVAJRA-LORDI CONSECRATE THE PLEDGE BY THE EMPOWERMENT OF THE VAS -NAMFy0M I CONSECRATEYOU VAJRA)resting This is the complete S_. in the hand of Buddhahood, (the vaj 21a You should Vairasattva. OBI THE ILRA_ hold it(21a) to according firm the a ra Axi. vow of PLEDGE, THE SUCCESS OF ALL THE TATHIGATAS, ABIDE, I HOLD YOU9 0 VAJRASATTVA HI HI HI HI HUý-he says. OM OMNISCIENT ONE THE PLEDGE OF THE VAJRA-Et POWERr1 T JI[JM.This the mantra the of The vajra are pointed finger thumb, the and join44to finger middle and the a point, finger and the, little forefinger and the ring crossed. on the Then(there from throat, forehead, nose, ears, hips, knees, feet, calves, eyes, and private the the on the a lunar arises) body. He manifests ürnä, between heart, himself consecrate eye-brows, arising the gesture: He should the 10 is self-empowerment, upwards are 5 from disc self-confidence the the of mantra his A in syllable parts. sacramental of possessed 15 all signs seed-syllable. Obi OMNISCIE[ýT 0NE4JAV EIJV VAAI HOV,YOU ARE THE PLEDGE, 0 PLEDGE HOý. 0t SAGE (21b) SAGE GREAT SAGE SVXBX. He should recite times it three 21b is or whatever usual. the Making 20 gesture the of on his ra.. union body he should recites JAV H1J VACSHOV. Summoning(the binds divinities) them and subdues to their proper va ra in places, he leads them in, by applying the 25 them. THE FOUR MUDRAS The samaya madras (There arises) HIJIK,Thus I will 35 a five-tipped The samara-mudräs , The gesture of made into (Ratnorija: (P= fqt blazing Sä7 consists with dala), _ in the meditation-posture(the the in middle making the finger made into a lotus. the middle finger made into the middle finger forming fingers. Lion( syllable 30 as follows. explained )aLrogqija )with a: (Vidvoigas)with made into are a point, )the sane s of pledge_ in the centre He site fingers the explain heart his of M! Ira-bond a vajra Myanun with the middle a jewel,, and the remaining 35 ones 30 The Basture of (llhva o I$at)the (TikpgojqIjas)the 22a finger blazing fingers and the a lotus leaf little the same with indicating fire, fingers ring together. out stretched forefingers the e ogqijaswith like raised (ChatroF4ija: forefinger made like ) t. (J, bra. a )the same with(the and the middle 5 in the form of in front hands)plaoed a vajra-network. places (Läs )the : (Gitä: )he motions thumbs are placed the with on his head, (pujpä: )he makes the heart, the at aftjaIi and then(MU)stretched away from gesture his out, mouth, and(*tZl: it ) 10 y1jarbond, ä: )raises and(DI it as a well-formed aß1jali. ä: )the (Di thumbs the Binding are together, pressed he should vajrra-fists the thumbs into (Va ra and(Gandbl: forefingers, the hold fingers in front and the middle each(pair) (Vair54kuäa: )he makes one forefinger )stretched of the out. thumbs, 15 one another. )binds apä9a: a hook, and(Vajr into a knot. hotas)the (Vajräveäas)the thumbs made into vajra-fists locked forefingers and the together, and a point, The dharma-mudräs At the disc the 20 level his of heart on a lotus. resting mantra eaitted .. he should The dharma- the envisage divinity)is each idrä(of on a lunar dharma-madrä produced by previouslyy The karma-nudräe Such is karma-mndräsa the $äkya.. King, just The gesture the 22b Wheel touching Doctrine(The of the of earth, The gesture of (Tikqgoq}igas)he a sword at the gestures giving, as it of is holds the four first in site 25 are turning these: (22b) respectively. a profound meditation. olub, and the arm(like)a in consists U$c;iVas) and fearlessness suahshe right heart. was explained, the meditation, Teiofqlga the at vajra left one(like) 30 heart. (DhajoVg! the right crossed at)hs should project forefinger the left and stretched out one. (Chat rog Such is ! as)he the rite puts of together the his karma. -mudrä hands of and holds the nine them like protecting an umbrella. Buddhas. 35 31 (hls äs): haughtily The bond of away from l9111 motioned the Ilia-fists By applying and the others he presses(Va little in Making the forefinger a flower the due order is the the left middle finger gesture of forefinger on the and the hip left fist is the such Placing the left a stick trunk an elephant's He places the a sword 23b is the Making grasping He should and the the right finger - out of gesture the his arrange them like hold the hold shoulder. them forming forefingers the the making the one like right 20 hold the heart, one as if sway the right seizing one above is the the crescent the gesture Placing then join hold them on the right as if side Jfataketu, of as if-holding a shield, left of of fist on the the moon with a vase - such is the gesture the together placing thigh the and the one to the little finger open them like a lotus right thumb and the side - Candraprabha. the hands at the heart together Binding - 30 He places such 25 3L) gesture hands . he should one like right AmTtaprabha. forming 15 SarApäyajaha. raise he should navel he should such is Great Making one near he should he should Ga.ganagafi ja. (l of vajra"-fists a banner them together. a hook he should Su-rag of at the Bodhisattvas, 10 place stretch hip on the fist rs Sarvagokatamonirghätanamati. of gesture left gesture the fist the of Gandhahastin. - such is the gesture left fist on the hip and holds the right the is such v the Placing is on the gesture of signs middle such the hý ), Amoghadaräin. of one - a knot(Va into Maitreya. a hook with right the into he should the forefingers he should fist and a fetter(Vajra- karma-mudrä. an eye - such is the gesture Making the 12ýra-fiats Placing of)Dhü two behind. bond of-the and the He places Projecting in the the Making vaj ra-fists(23a) such - gesture forefinger, the with the with explain by applying Beings, make(the 5 finger. räveda) Now I shall of turned accordingly. the with pä&a) such face, and then the he should He makes a hook(Vaýrämkufia) the movements. NTt. - circle 23a swaying, he bows with tips the - such vajra-fists them on the breasts he should is the of Bhadrapitla. gesture he should - such is and arrange the 35 them as if gesture of holding Jälinlprabha. 32 the He places the projecting the of attitude giiinj7 one - right the He places is such one - fist left on the fist the gesture The. icatuuý4s$ gesture is and snapps of Pratibh$naküta, hip and forms fingers his by _a =i tual without symbols 5 with the with a gem-fist of Samantabhadre. e xprd*avA (24a) Akýayamati. of gesture on the navel the is such the is such left the He places the fist left the He places 24a heart the one at right Vajragarbha. the is of gesture such in the holds heart the one right and at finger middle and the hip on. the fist left right 38 The mabä-mudr$ He holds his at (of festations holder the in their the a five-tipped various divinities) the of as the manner his of holding. his envisage their their nature heart. Beings Great to according he makes the Being 15 gesture, the meaningfully reciting while the Bodhisattvas, Great Being his vajra-at and implements gestures Of whichever true the of mani- and implements. the hold the to according it gestures he should bell, mahä-audrä with holding va ra with and the bra manifestations he should appro- spell. priate The four 24b Through the heart to be known is This 10 mudr$s making of the of act every (every the the _ the divinity all beings living thus one. Having fix the all divinities. 20 one produces been from freed all mudrä and the turn) order to mantra. he should mantra the mai aala. Making Sarvadurgati in of (24b) gain Enlightenment. and the explain By applying in beings mantra Now I will benefit the an om;siscient living destinies Efficacy are them for good qualities evil to be made in he recites the be able vajra-dance to perform 25 towards mantras. 0M DAMAGE SARVAIURGATIPARISODHANARRJA, THE TATBGATA, THE ARHAT, THE PERFECT BUDDHA, 30 and again: Oý PURIFIER PURIFIER, PURIFIER OF ALL EMILS, PURE PURE MOST PURE IN RESPECTOF THE OBSTRUCTIONSOF ALL ACTS SVXHA. the Taking 25a with the hold them at right bell of the ten in left fist and brandishing the energetically vajra say: VAJ RAVXCA'AKKI INM JA? JA? JA?. He should (the divinities). forth He should to draw order one he should his heart in (25a) JA? HO?. TAKKI say: By acting his with this stages. manner Next he makes them firm he becomes On seeing the equal them he should with of offer the every the hundredfold Bodhisattvas, worship. syllable. the lords 35 33 Praises the of divinities Then he should Homage to the destinies evil in you Vaj truth rt the about the for self Sameness consecrate living beings perform all to for who illuminating Homage to you Dhvajo14! a_ who holding gem fulfil living hopes all of lements the Enlightenment living of to the obtain kingship Homage to you four born Dtpl on the Homage to world of the edge(of the in the Production intent the three the banner off the sorrow living of spheres beings. living all cause the of 15 wish-granting four major defi- and minor N. ra4s0bring about is whole world adorned the of the with three 20 spheres white umbrella. N:Ftyl, and Gandhä. Pä , ZhholpL the and in to who reside and Indra, quarters, the the guardians the por- doorways. sides the(twelve) of 25 the stages Rudrer, Candra, Arka the i, Räk$asa and to you of four of portals(26a) Joy and the Guardians , wand the of the rest. lord 30 this should royal it recite hymn of praises holding the in front of va ra and the the mag4ala, bell. of the sax 4a1s, Now I shall explain the e1a known as Supreme Royal one. O!! THE SYLLABLE A, THE SOURCE OF ALS, THE DHARMAS ( NON-ORIGINATION and intent on Activity Spirits. Pronouncing the Gant_ four 10 Dharma. Mälä, Gltäand mag4al_a), occupying you BratmI Self-nature of the the and so on, standing Homage to you Bodhisattvas spheres. self-nature the of Dharma which geddessesgUeA faith of power who cause Homage to you Aipkuu a, g= tals, Wisdom) beings. of hä, and to you Pugpä, D three the beings. who by cutting and by destroying beings. Truth, Homage to you Chatrogqlfa ß`4 your of appeasement(25b)of the Noble perceive ambrosia who with the the 5 expound truth(of Descrimination Homage to you Tikrogr}iga the 26a the Absolute the in purify spheres. living all of living a who by the Homage to you Te opqita beings benefit Doctrine three Pure who by manifesting showering acts its with Wisdom of)the the Homage to you Vi voggiga 25b world everyone Homage to you Padmogg! revive whole a_ who(by Homage to you Rat_oc2Va of ¢ala s these praisess worship with all Sikya-Lion the Wheel of who turning Homage to all the of FROM THE BEGINNING. From the on the sizteenfold voidness application ACCOUNT OF THEIR of of the whole universe its meaning in the ten 35 34 see himself he should directions, (26b)Then by mans 26b (there H produced from the syllable top of it the Great Waters from the sylKADI;in its from the syllable the Gold4 "Vla VAtI; cn top of tim lable own selfhood. of the vajra the Air-Maz gala'on arises) his in as void centre 5 he says: IUU SU ! HJV. By saying it he produces Mount Sumeru made of jewels, by it kinds He mans empower should of geas. square and adorned with all of the Ok4VAJRA BE FIRM and so forth. and by saying gesture Y&Jra-bond (there (Sumeru)by the the karma-mudrä vajrs_. causation On top of means of of has%op from the BHTh!. It a palace storey made of produced syllable arises) va ras, gsas, and jewels. tympanums. 0n four of banners with 27a centre there the the disos, divinities (drawn) discs thus (he envisages) another. of on top the divinities. a lunar Because disc its of on the as the Removal Binding of All into Entering the perfect He is asLion. explain as the madri the in seated Thought of concentration a state as the concentration (27b) mantra. of and the he should. vajra. by the destroys that ssaeära by the compassion From the Then on the ration. syllable lunar He should disc 20 is beings: fully perknown is 25 A is the of are in lunar mantras all of disc all(the one by one) is This whole of the saaadraa. 30 are freed three the from the he should its evil destinies in 35 bonds _a-Lion. produces envisage(them freed Buddha on lotuses resting impresoned same way those painful which one such which them successively. open Doctrine Lord are held, and by unfolding of the lotuses from the painful confinement, the into living he becomes mantra in disc lunar Enlightenment, benefitting of a state as been and other(insects) Just as Sky-Pervading, Imperfections. -fists turning the Wheel of of gesture 4he example is as follows: In lunar eight Wisdom and Means melting this fected 15 spokes of places and on the Lion-Seat, representing - self-Mature mantra knote concentration resting consonants of the a state 015 SACS SAGE GREAT SAGE SVXVL. By means of of the eight 41 for fors the Within twenty at its va ras. At As for look he should mag4ala, it. maUq!!j&(27a) The inner made of of emblems and necklaces, pearls attached. disc as a cause the 27b into and the vowel's outer threads by a garland a lunar domains of has the it pinnacles 10 four with on woven cloths. Entering the four adorned gates strings with encompassed the the of adorned with four doors, and on the and with wheel Lion-Seat lunar are is and garlands, having square, on the moon. It has an eight-spoked is is oomers, sun and the the It the divinities) beginning heart are with of SlUryamuni, brought to matura- Va ro n! Va and 35 piaj räve äa. with ending Now the aantrass SODHANARAJA, THE TATTAGATA,THE ARHAT,THE PERFECTBUDDHA, OM SARVAUJRGA 28a and agsins(28a) OF ALL SINS, PURE PURE MST PQRIFIER, PURIFIER Obi PURIFIER IN RESPECT OF THE OBSTRUCTIONS OF ALL ACTS SVAHi. Now I shall the explain O VAJRA HU PRAT - he produces as five Illnminating this recite mantra. comes forth and it verbally of all living beings. the ten directions they put an end to the misery all (These rays) 10 his heart, The mingling converging enter of the mantra and the rays rays, On the from 29a this He should due order. in arrangement 5 PURE spoke an a lunar seated disc resting on a lotus, gesture of the rays in perfect the emanating on a lotus, makes the gesture from to in colourgbrilliant 15 emanating from his heart living all the the on the place this(mantra)MM sits and converof mantra (next) spoke RATNOTTAMA TRAM, 20 on a lunar the Buddha mexks, He is blue all lga Va ro combination correct heart, emerges earth. the with his there Tathigata regard his in He consecrates of giving. the he produces be produced H9 is adorned with maxj4ala white(29a) by means of a, emerging inner the H9 is with be seated He should _qx The Ta above and converging one should forms, beings, touching of directions all rigbt(south), living bodily the of of same way as explained image, This quarter benefit the rays perfect the In and the to eastern He makes the and lustrous, ging for heart, his the of the produces beings disc resting in colour and of the three spheres.. by means of As before in 29b the (this from order correct one) the western the of is on a lunar of He should Q fivoWla1 the the appearance and the seed(syllable) beautiful, and converging emanating of disc ta(29b) colour produoe(the &iddha, of on a lotus, lotus, red the and sakes his giving the Etgr heart, rays), from the heart on a lunar produce jqLga_ should instruction. gesture disc 25 end of produced sit on the He is meditation. image) sayings 01 VISVOTTAMA AIV. The Tat next emerges from rays, emerging resting (of images, ho should the PADMDTPM1A HRIV. The Tat ssyingsOl spoke the resting 30 to on of splendour, his body is of an the northern spoke. He is full he fearlessness. Performing the the all and makes gesture of acts oolour, green (of the Buddha) he liberates living beings from samsära. a lotus placed From the on a lunar disc with disc his OM he should syllable resting right on a lotus hand and his produce on the left the Tat south-eastern one rests on the to o spoke"He hip. iga. He sits holds He illuminates a solar 35 36 the three spheres From the 30a from emerge heart. he removes granting%gea, to The Tathiga the like tiful to The Tat Chatrogr! a is born spoke. He is the 3As for a jasmine-drop like is the(Buddhas) All AV - by reciting emerge from the heart. 30b and the others four(intermediate) in on lotuses (respective) families: white, the he holds discs resting mantra the his left beings. living on full the 10 Ais lotuses. ä J1 goddesses on lunar seated one. an umbrella. four discs(30b)restingl5 colours As for red, and variegated. They are others. four(outer) the in lotuses in beau- emerges Dharma of They have he should same mantra ä and the goddessesDha yellow, the They are corners. and a book is their of their gestures, before. they are as explained By reciting this body his of seed-syllable gesture, are seated on lunar HRIt EDV TRI the spoke. He should north-western a sword of his wish- DMV. Destroying The colour from lord the of 5 syllable on the on a lotus. on the north-eastern colour the hand he holds right banner the on the beings. from he emerges resting his sky. In born is should on a lotus resting Holding among living jealousy disc disc(30a) colour. body). Dhva oIq! Va. Th also Tathägata in red-black defilements, on a lunar be seated the his colour(of white on a lunar TikqDogniga and major minor of born He site spoks. He is south-western the ILTM is syllable the light the with his on lunar seated having corners, from produce the discs of colours heart the resting their four on 20 respective families. OM THE DHARMA-ESSENCE COMPLETELY PURIFIED FROM ALL THE SwERAS, if EISEN FROM THE SKY, MOST PURE IN ITS NATURE, ENCOMPASSING THE GREAT METHOD SVXEX - with this= the sets of four, residing They all the As for on lunar sit gestures being Naiýra, beautiful. In his he should on both discs produce sides their and colours of of heart, right Bodhisattva the eastern in on lotuses, resting virtuous of the hand he holds is the the bodies they golden in and others, gate(andd%re posture are colour, agaa flower Maitre 25 e others). of sattvavarya4ka. as follows: resplendent his and in and left one 30 a waterpot. 31a (31a)The and lustrous second one is Amoghadarfin. He is resplendent with golden for his handy and As gesture, he holds a lotus stalk in his right colour. his left one rests on the hip. The third with white colour. The fourth white and yellow Bodhisattva As for one is oolours. is his He is A. resplendent a hook. ggesture, he holds Sarver&okataaanirghätanamati. lie is seated in the and lustrous Hi rediates sattýºaparyaýica with posture mingled holding 35 37 his left one on a club in his right hand and resting The four Bodhisattvas seated to the sides of the in The first one is Gandhahastin. He is pale-blue hand he holds a conch shell filled with scent and his the hip. He removes all The second one is 31b He is resplendent (31b) he rests his the He pacifies The third beautiful with left hand His sorrow The fourth left the wish-granting. Those hip and holds white on top of one is J_. seated The first and yellow it. left one rests on of from all defile cryetal. As for a sword in ents. his his gesture, right one. beings. hip. In his adorned with oolours. He repels He comprehends hip and in his gem. He removes the on lunar resting discs all all a lotus the with the all hopes. He appears blue one he holds banner of treasures 10 obstructions. all right misery He is ornaaents. hand he holds right He fulfils on the one is He holds moon. of a crest (32a) he holds of space. the in colour. 15 of poverty. on lotuses to ambrosia the sides the of white. In his one is the Bhadrap$la. Dharma. His of he holds a blazing The fourth it. His in white-red hand rests (formed left in abundance. hand right on the He explains and in 20 obscurities hand rests oolour. hip on the the like) his hip. the right 25 one jewel. Bodhisattva holds He . left He is of of longevity hip. He grants He removes on top colour right)hand Candraprabha. and disc the with with(the on the called a lunar with totality the known as Jäliniprabha. is He is beautiful and red vajra-net. on lunar seated discs on lotuses resting to the sides of the 30 gates The first left of hand rests one is beautiful He is His body is beautiful The third northern vessel left The second a lotus Those Am£ta rabha. the a gem. His of ignorance. His hand on the living gates oolour. In his right gates western 32a colour on the hand rests His the Gagaanagaßija. He is niggled rests Fie liberates with of one is Dharms-treasure the left southern 5 obstructions. called Mra and lustrous the hip. Buddha putr&4 is hand rests and the called hip He is Vajragarbha. and in his white-blue right one he holds He is established in colour. a lotus with a va ra. The second 32b of beings. with known as Akgayam He is indefectibility. Holding one is his both resplendent hands the vase with of ti. the colour knowledge of at the limits a jasmine-drop. he satiates all living (32b) 35 3ß The third full colour, his in of one he holds rigat The fourth left IIidowed 33b of hip hand on the and Samantabhadra. He is blue hand he holde right in colour, of jewels a cluster 5 and hip. forms such state the in Rites with the is This on the one rests in red jewels. is called In his left his He rests a heap of Bodhisattva and lustrous. beautiful his and lustre. splendour He is known as Pratibhänaküja. is Buddhaputra the are known as the concentration Bodhisattvus. Compassionate (33b) Supreme Royal Ma344a, sau¢ala SAGE SAGE GREAT SAGE SVXHII. (4 10 01$ ' BJMAGE TO SARVADURGATIPARISODHANARXJA,THE TATHXGATA, THE ARHAT, THE PERFECT BUDDHA, and again: PURIFIER, PURIFIER 01 PURIFIER OF ALL SINS, PURE PURE MOST PURE IN RESPECT OF THE OBSTRUCTIONS OF ALL ACTS SVXB 34a envisage the Glorious King creation and the mantra his gesture. He should produce the 34b fingers, left his manner the the gate the with gesture making the King, the gesture gate his with gate. above OMtJIS25 arms and Yoga, should of the the with Vairacakras01i of 20 and of unlocking the vajra Master forefingers the unlock the with Glorious his right Seeing before a dish blessed water for the and the entourage the him the assembly present the feet. the the convoke a steady of the fingers gather in way and acts a he says: OM VAJRAand pronouncing tagether. All the 30 Buddhas others. mantra offerings in them together snapping to mention with fingers one. Putting By mere assembly not Then he should offer mark ala hand he snaps with the order come together, from forth stretch HUM.By means of 'UNION HUV VAV ß$"(34b) of with Buddhas. With similar beginning the He opens Maz4ala. fingers the CIERT ONE VAJRA-CIRCLE all Knowledge he should little and the the (34a) 15 mudrä. with OM O?VISCIE[IT snapping seven is such ONE OPEN THE GATES HUN[.He should make a chain mantra the evoke the bra-fists Binding thirty he should mantra S-k a cýa-Lion. he should Next the of this - with divinities max a1a in space, he takes of the of Va ra. ak a and offers with appropriate gestures. it to Next water dring; he should 35 39 (He says: ) OII VAJRA-FLOWER HU1! 01 VAJRA-INCENSE BUU orj VAJHA--LAMP HUBT 5 OM VAJRA-SCENT HUU Having the following 35a abstacles divinities) into the mudräs. he performs Next means of the all (the lead he should the method mantra four by means of the previously. explained before. mantra of he should The karma-imxdrä the of) Sattvavajri, Va ra is mah. -mudrä the perform The dharma.. studrä Finally (35a). mahn-mudr. (the gesture Revealing the akga man4ala. First explained karma-mudrä. the of mantra removed is is samaya-mudrl performed performed by performed with with the the mantra 10 the of vajri by (applying consecrate the and ending with those and the ma-Gdala Vajräve6a. Tathägata the with i ja Vajro member divinities He should concluding consecration, (he says: ) the of) Ratnavajrt, perform tenth. and the beginning the five and Karma- Dharmavajri, others, being 15 King with the consecrations, The consecrations he should master- completed OTI TEE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF INCENSE-WORSHIP OF ALL THE TATHGATAS HUM. 20 OII TIE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF FLOWER-WORSHIP OF ALL THE TATHAGATAS Ht I. OM THE CONCURRENCEOF THE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF LAMPWORSHIP OF ALL THE TATI-iGATAS HUM OM THE CONCURRENCEOF TIE WAFTING OF THE CLOUD-MASS OF SCENT-WORSHIP OF ALL THE TA71GATAS Then he should 35b HU5 worship the Brandishing 25 Läs with and others. he should vajra them as before praise (35b) with the hundred Vajra-verses: -fold Incomparable, ushakable, Compassionate removers Bestowers of these all Incomparable, Like space Bestowing They are of they sufferings in their bear are incomparable, perfections compare in the good qualities unequalled quite elemental of qualities excellent beyond the limitless unshakable, These excellent in. their unequalled their the 30 world, and perfections, elemental no comparison in nature, to the nature, slightest realm of manifest incomparable perfections. beings, degree, 14o The perfect Born force the of Such aspiration intent Boundlessly to Attaining Even those to 36a May those best in the who thus Aspiring of of ones the give best devotion to a hundred-tongue-mouth, with directions, ten and the to He should ceremony. (of Buddhahood), the best of threefold whole gifts, 10 world, bestow perfections, deliver hymn of this the in praises the this for the the sound of Trailo 15 in Buddhas of requirements with directions and bell. divinities outer pledge. all Mara to all present and to me their upon holding it present together oblation ones, peerless Buddhahood, Bodhisattvas, recite give way he should every the above, world of 5 world, (36a) the he should in Then worshipping the to threefold the utterly who always timeless of to Blessedness Dharmal perfections state with the forth, shines world. the in the attained blessed the perfections perfection Excellence the Unobstructed May they final its great best ones compassionate good in the giving eternally Who bestow of who have the these pure; by nature, and unobstructed compassion, forever ones, compassionate great on achieving in operates Hail their of aspiration perfect It these of 6 world oblation many verses. RITE FOR THE DEAD he should Firstly his snapping vi 36b fingers together a, (36b) the destroying He should the reciting are purify mantra impurities of the cow. Pronouncing the products of three whole the four the bones and by means of three of Summoning, the he brings rest, drawing dead body placed PURIFIER etc. 011 K gesture applied. seeds of the properly with states mantra and the syllables mantras 0I by means of sins mass of universe. mantra the the pronouncing the and striking the pronouncing the the the of - such in and so forth with sins draw of 47 in a- together binding, out, 20 of a white all and by cloth 25 mustard. white he should wash away with water existence. he should RANI etc. it purify the with five 30 OIT RATNA etc. mantra he should purify it all with kinds of good scent. pronouncing pronouncing excellent the mantra betwixt the OIL! AMOGHA etc. mantra OII Mr A RI TA he should etc. purify he should it purify with cow milk. it with liquor. intoxicating pronouncing water the mantra and between 35 0I1 PUITYP PUITYE etc. he should purify it with 41 once more the Reciting the purify a hearth Then making 37a the reciting path for form it With his his happy two hands grain and white other things. As for by performing This state being he throws other this in living of into seeds the mixed he should manner living is fire burning (37a) sesame, honey, dried beings quickly called Karm aräj ri (Best beings, they are per- and ginger Thus happiness. obtain 5 parched before. them as described perform others. a burnt milk, corn, the and and obstructions. sins butter, He should he should destiny, of removal together, rites, concentration the Dhüpä offer evil enduring it. consecrate goddesses, he should size and for continuance mustard the one cubit four the of mantras in that Remembering sacrifice. he should hymn of benediction King 10 of Acts). CLOSING SCENE This the misery They are being of hell born 37b decorated scent, it with with The hosts the grove umbrellas, robes, for those for the benefit with the illustrious living living of beings freed in from joyful realms. Buddhas. together to worship life, this and act like Then Indra order completed endless of of gods joy banners jewels cloud-amass raised with of victory,, and other of the masses gods praises Thought of ornaments. the born Tathägatas flowers, and many other It and came forth of Enlightenment heavenly flags, danced and incense, ornaments, became one great marvel. in in (37b) lamps, and filled 15 42 CHAPTER II I TP LA OF MtKYAMUNI expounded the latter Then the Lord Va re. äºi, the Great Bodhisattva of the King-Treatise of up from The Hero got the of foremost and he brought (Purification of Evil forth tions), the this blessing. and brandished seat, rejoiced before Lord's Lord of the from his heart the spell called Gladdenin vajra. Sages, he entered Sarv$varamarifiodhanavaira(Vajra-Remover called concentration his as, bowing of by means of Mantras part of into All g a state Obstruc- 5 Durgatiparifodhana Destinies). 0M VAJRA BURNING ALL SINS HU14PHAT (Spell of the Lord)2 OBI VAJRA PURIFYING ALL EVILS (Spell 38a of Vajrap i) OM REDUCE TO ASHES THE OBSTRUCTIONS (38a) (Spell of J 10 IU11 PHAT OF ALL ACTS HUI PHA' ) o$nig! 0! 1 BHRU11DESTROY THE OBSTRUCTIONS 3J1! PHAT (Spell of Cakravartin) 15 OM DRU PURIFY THE OBSTRUCTIONS HJ (Spell of Vijaya) OM BURN BUHN, ANNIHILATE (Spell ANNIBILATE, KILL KILL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUM PHAT of Tejorä6i) OM SRU OVERCOME (Spell PHA' of OME,PREVAIL PREVAIL OVER THE OBSTRUCTIONS HU1MPHAT 20 Sitätapatra) OM HUIj REMOVE REMOVE ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUM PRAT (Spell of Vikirina) OM HUM PRAT DISPEL ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUt4 PEAT (Spell of Vidhvapsak) 25 0M REED REND3 ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUM PEAT (Spell of Läsya) ONESTOP STOP4 ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUM PHAT (spell of MR19 OM CUT OFF CUT OFF, DISPERSE DISPERSE ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUM PRAT (Spell O of Gita IMPAIR IMPAIR ALL THE OBSTRUCTIONS HUNTPHAT5 (Spell of N:Ftyä) 30 43 EVERY CAUSE OF DESTINIES INTO HELL HOPI PHAT BUI OBI BU (Spell the of Blessed One's entourage) OM TERMINATE TERMINATE EVERY CAUSE OF BIRTH AMCG THE TOF14NTED SPIRITS HU?I PHAT (Spell for sliainating destinies all being of born 5 among tormented spirits) Obi DESTROY DESTROY EVERY CAUSE OF BIRTH AMONG ANIMALS HU1I PHAT (Spell for suppressing Then he explained 38b OF ALL EVIL OM PURIFIER DESTINIES, FLOWER-BEIi)LDER HUM PHA' PHA ' OF ALL EVILS#PRODUCER OF KNOWLEDGE-PERCEPTION H4 0M PURIFIER 15 Dipi) of ON DESTROYER OF ALL EVIL (Spell 10 Palp$) of (Spell servioes. Dhü !º of (Spell their among animals) OF ALL SINS, CAST AWAY CAST AWAY, F TMUGATEHM PHAT (38b) OM PURIFIER (Spell all born of being destinies DESTINIES, POSSESSED OF SCENT HUM PHA4' Gandhä of 0OI EVOKERFROMALL DESTINIES INTO HELL HIJZ PHAT (Spell of Aipkuäa) 20 0k! RESCUERFROMALL DESTINIES INTO FELL Eutl PHA' (Spell of Pita OBI LIBERATOR FROM THE BONDS OF ALL EVILS (Spell Spho j) of 011 REM)VER OF THE PAINS OF ALL EVIL (Spell the As for inner the Sitätapatra, the to gates and four Hero to be drawn it is left the (in in made the than north-west V_r draw the outer tyspaauss _AVkuu , all the appropriate the corners. of the Hero he should draw a, and to part. It places). has a centre It draw south-east Sp , spokes. design draw Cakravartin, he should to eight he should inner i. In front Vijaya, their with adorned. One. Behind Next he should by the niglala6 Having Mighty to JayoI the the Lord in the centre , HTý PHAT 25 circle, and a circuaferenoe. Va ra IES71NIES of Aveäa Then he explained 39a HU PHAT is the the the north-east square, adorned with should and other right(39a) 31 Vidhvvpaka. south-west t$, snd Ghagj Pugd to Tejoräfii, to four be placed goddesses are 35 44 Then he should made a garland He should the summon all scent Next the thinga, and other and put enter should vajra-teacher on gods. Those who have been led in in this way and consecrated, they become 5 free from all evil destinies. They are born in the higher places of heavenly realms. They achieve every success and they certainly obtain the perfect(39b) Enlightenment. at They perform tines. all Doing demons and the Va rap*; rest. the the one becomes treatise power of and others are homa sacrifices, Vajjrradhara bowed down and saids their the best from all 'I shall May all gestures. by the mind*ervaded All those most of this) a. excellent R1kiasas, recitations, things-15 leonine gaze, characteristics blessing the Ones give with ' compassion. the afijali and placing a state gesture of concentration (40a) forehead the of making one should bow down - such is the gesture on to the Buddhas. obeisance Remaining in The one who knows yoga holding throat, the into like it i makes the a budding lotus - gesture the such is the at lotus level in gesture 25 Placing the bra-aS a point such (These gestures) on the top llity. This Family. of is ai the left it. the at the in hand widespread Joini. ng together gesture he joins heart, the V 8 pledg+es. gesture comprehend the Placing 20 his of Padma Family. - 11 to and similar with syllable subjected Asuras, images face Lord's the part by means of drawn their Victorious sensation of aºs,Gendharvas, destinies the explain the latter (viz evil at the another of looked the acts Yak diseases, all by means of the gods, from become free everything. unimpeded and remain all in and consecrations The Lord of of accomplished released as before acts i performs method destinies, evil the all has to be done they what HTM. Yet by following 40a flowers. with JAV RJ11 VAI$ A0V, 0 LORD COME,O GREAT COMPASSIONATE ONE BEHOLD ROV* sayings 39b fragrant of body his anoint the fingers middle Family. on the lap, one puts thumbs he should is. the of' concentration ra the in pladge look the his tranqui- with Tatb hand right 30 g to 9 the above gesture inside-out. Joining together and binding fingers and the thumbs like a chain, he should place them at He turns the little the heart. Making the in This is a full thumb, stretching the Padma Family. the in pledge-gesture tali he forms out the rest a point of the the Vajra with fingers. Family. the little This 35 finger is the and pledge-gesture 45 firmly Making 40b he should fingers, Ya ra gestu re of the form all the the fingers. the little This is (The right for gesture made by moving 15 by lowering it. held pointed hands formed like open is the the thumbs The same with Gandhä. (41a) the it the same way as the 14 acts. in the all he stretches 13 resistance. wide the The same with middle upwards a conch of gesture fingers the out rest - of 10 left aßijali the 5 is a jewel like formed thumbs, all This finger. 11 ring fingers ring of dis of Pupä Holding for gesture The same with 41a and the 12 and the turned middle the va. jra- is This Sarvadurgatipariäodhanaräja. of eonseeration. the performing gesture with and the forefinger the fingers thumb. and the the with a vajra-point and the thumbs in the same way as above, forefingers hand is) The gesture the of and forming finger little fingers leaf the gesture Joining (40b) purifications The same with such is extend 10 i. the a lotus of gesture rar-bond the little Arranging he should the hand. gesture This the is and upwards, 15 is the gesture of Dipä. 16is the gesture of shell oblation. is inside placed the for gesture making 20 offerings. ra-. bond In the joint intermediate the middle fingers the and all fingers are are put together out stretched and bent at the - the gesture of - the gesture of Vi ki`ina. the Next little fingers and the thumbs are drawn in 25 Vidhvaigsaka. The affiali He should In the and turned upwards like as if - the the light emitting sway thea2ijali vajra-bond In the fingers formed his round little finger gesture vajra-bond the a jewel and the middle of the gesture of Tejoräft. head - the gesture of Sitätapatraý7 a fetter and the thumb are made into Cam(-vartin). fingers are formed ones as if remaining like emitting a vajra, light the the - fore- 30 gesture of Jayo14iAga. In the 41b the remaining same way he makes the ones he should He makes the lessness with the gesture left form of forefingers like them like a vajra giving one - the with gesture the of right the a va ra and binding together the gesture of Vi a a. hand and of (41b) fear- Tathlgata. 35 46 In the he should form (Vajrasattva)18 the bra-bond Yajra of gesture he draws Next in forefinger the of (a4raräja). Hook of Next he forms an arrow - (the Next he makes a point with he bends the the (the hand - right - gesture) (Yajraräga). Arrow of gesture) his forefingers the a va ra with the - thumbs Sädhuaati of gesture 5 (Vajraddhu). Next then at joints middle (the - of Jewel gesture) (va raratna). (he forms) Next gesture) of fingers middle as if light emitting - (the 10 (Va ratejas). light He places the it on the crown of it in front the - the head - the of gesture peak (7a raketu). He places He forms Next the gesture of (Vajradharma). a lotus the Lotus gesture of the forefinger and the middle he bends (Va rahäsa). laughter finger 15 (the - gesture of) Sword (Vajratikna). He forms it like a bracelet He holds it like a lotus (the He stretches Vifiva (Vajrakarma). (the He stretches Rakga (Vajrarak 42a it He bends firmly (the (42a) the (the gesture of) wheel (the gesture (Vajrabhäga). tongue of) (the gesture into points of) into points (the out a knot it - - (the fte&% S gesture gesture (the - forefingers (the - gesture 20 of) ý`ässl st of) of) (Va ra qa). (Vajrasandhi) Yak4a binding gesture of) A$kuga. of) Pääa. gesture (the gesture of) Spho a. 0 gesi irre of) ¶ osg.. blue Yi` bt IN Shia" time gesture) front Be should tiýdish Ma dsm as sLanld th. mar fo? a( so and - gesture) The same , pointed The same made into L leaf above the at he bends isli - (Vajrahetu). ). s He bends Next above (the _i the. vomukippsd in front 21 be should perfume all the rites* in the fell*WUW he Yris'd ftallokysVij dwaid 1lorship of it one hosed aria it with flowers thanssad 25 47 DALA OF VAJRAPXNI M Pronounced by Vajrapämi Dhäraaiß Sakra Then Brahist, life). long (to explain 0 Master the 'We beg you words: good fortune ala 'Good, of it put Now the called Long Life, Merit and I good effect shall into entered He issued the performed world syllable Life of O? the All this ' heart of ) show is 10 concentration is Which the spell Source the of the all 15 PRODUCEROF GROWTH of living All knew that the entered of beings they and being all the born in freed. were illuminated into the hells, 20 the All they plugma Tathägatas. a state entered (Radience-Producer dhäsýuQ3 called essential Tates all Vajrapäqi dhlrazi essential and thus acts spell Lord this He pronounced his illuminated, Amitäyurvajraprabhäkari called explain, state -a suppressed. Buddha the Once more the 42b you IIOWASURABLE MERIT, and animals were twelve is of were spirits which and MERIT AND KNOWLEDGESVäflA. evils the short 5 yajfiänasambhäravardhana-(Increasing GREAT MERIT, LIFE, all of the and Knowledge). among tormented regions for it is which (Vajra from Aparimitäyu By mere pronouncement Tathägatas, obtain into looked 'good' saying (äe said: by Sakra and BraheL headed Vajra Or MERIT MERIT, OF LNG to life whose assembly by $akra, such enthusiasm Longevity). Tathägatas able their known as Sarvämitäyussphaaragasaabhavavajra Producing these explain please those of with great into Lord 0 Master Secret, one is by which method gladdened good 0 gods led excellent', the in Lord t22 VWaplqi the the gods addressed and longevity limited. is The Lord the of happiness benefit, good, and other of concentration of Infinite (42b) Vajra-Life). (Yajraa- Sarvatathägatäyurvaj s)s IMMORTAL CUE IMMORTAL ONE, THE. ORIGIN OF IIIN)RTALITY, THE SOURCE OF IMMORTALITY, COZIRAGEOUSFURSiTER OF INP RTALITY, ELIMINATOR OF 3 DEFILEMENTS SVMH By its qavinýani this the the more pronouncement Once more the Lord (Destruction Obstructions of entered of i essential All a state Invincible called the sorrows of of living concentration Obstructions), tävar Sarvatathä Tathägatas). all 24 30 beings were called Amoghävara- lie emitted f rou tro. sna (Cutting pacified. his heart Off of OZ RADIANT CNE RADIANT GNE, ABOLISHER ABOLISHER, REVOICERREVOKER OF THE 25 CONTINUITY OF ALL KARMAS OF LIVING BEINGS SVAAA. By more fact 25 of its pronouncement everything happened accordingly. 35 48 the Once sore $arvtýara All By the (Destruction the All of called Obstructions 5 tas)s(43a) Tatl fact men Mire, were its of the Lord AmoghäpratihatastE!! entered all of yaraz}avidhvailsini the By the mere fact trembled, quivered, marvel of the In its PHA` its of is and essential AND INDESTHTTCTIBLE OBSTRUCTIONS, :7 highest the all many wonderful events seen in were 15 the of regions world and quaked. On account swerved, moved, shook the world. 2 (43b) ms1;jal square four with is maz}4ala. This he should centre va ra and bell, the having central Aktobhya. the Lord the Excellent the on four best draw the of position To the south (Amitäbha), draw Va ra äni, Lord face like the the spoke to and to the tympanums, spokes. attached One, holding Powerful 25 he should east, Ratna(-sambhava), the north circle primary (44a) moon. full draw he should the the the four with mandala central has four It sides. he should it Inside a smiling Ambuja 20 gates and a oircumference. In this heart his from pronouncement throbb6d, their is This a centre of concentration (Eradication of Invincible of the mad la Description It 10 Tath&gatass DESTROY DESTROY H4 43b of powers called Heemitted Ott DESTROYER OF INVINCIBLE this a state Obstructions). Indestructible dhäxez! prosounceffient destructive the all destroyed. Once more 44a dhäsj essential the All of JEWEL JEWEL, GREAT JEWEL, JEWE, -SOURCE, JEWEL-RAY, PURE JEWEL-GARLAND, 6 PURIFY ALL SINS HIJJI PRAT: O of this heart vareavinä#ana the called concentration Vajra. -Purification his from #He emitted Sarvatathägs, of of a state entered avieslavidiuddhivajra(Spotless obstructions) 43a Lord Mighty draw to the Hero Amo west (- siddhi). All the the Universal making the Tathäßatas should Monarcha, adorned gestures of giving, be drawn with all having the ornaments, superb beautiful and so forth, fearlessness appearance like the and seated 30 of moon, in the vaj rapary_aupca postures. DWpI and other the their corners. main drawn be to accordingly goddesses are The guardians characteristic of being the gates wrath. are to be drawn in all looking angry, 35 't q in the mark ila Then the yogin enters Consecration the aatraa of (his 44b in pupil) he worships to order briefly the a garland summon the divinities Lord and he introduces (44b) Mcty 's snaked? who appears, fear of 5 gesture should Vajra-TerintirMe flowers. made of the MFt. yu and the destroy OM VAJRA-PLEDGE BU Making He should J.AIV HUIJ VA4 IXV, 0 LORD VA,TRA COME COME,YOU ARE sayings THE PLEDGE.Nezt himself. He should lead have him in him throw holding it into a jewel the or maia4alas OBI VAJRA RECEIVE FBI. Than he should unveil (into his the faces give the pledge: OBI VAJRA-MIR49 UNCOVER ffiJ. He should make him look 10 OM AJVRA LOOK AO?. maz4ala): Then he should (The consecration 0U VAJRA PLEDGE HUV. He should the perform of the Five consecration Families) OM VAJRA CONSECRATE HUM O1 BUDDHA CONSECRATE0; 'I 15 OM RAINA CONSECRATE TRAM OM PADMA CONSECRATE PEIti OM BAS CONSECRATE Abi Then he should give the consecration Ot4 VAJRA-VASE CONSECRATE HUN! of the vases. 20 OM BUDDHA-VASE CONSECRATE OM OBI RAINA-VASE CONSECRATETRAM 0 PAIZiiA-VASE CONSECRATE HRIV OBI KARMA-VASE CONSECRATEABI (The 'z consecration of the garland) 25 Obi GARLAND CONSECRATE TRAM (The consecration of 075 VAJRAPEMANT (The emsecration 45& Ott BUDDHA 0V silk pennant) CONSECRATE TRX? of the mudräs) RA CI SECRATEOBI (45a) HUM. -MUDRx CONSECRATE 0j RATIA-MUDRX CONSECRATE THXU Oil AMKA"- UDRA CONSECRATE imIV OO KARMA-MPDRX CONSECRATEABI 30 50 (The ) act consecration O4 Y ALU-ACT CONSECRATE HOIL AV (The consecration the of Cakravartin) Wheel and of O? YAJRA-WHEEL CONSECRATE HOBSBBldk4 TIM$ TR1 TRAM HOV ice[ 1" 0! 0 YOU OBI CONSECRATE -WHEEL HRI? HRIV HRTU Abi AV All Obi MAY THE LORD OF THE V_ 5 (The name consecration) O$ VAJRA-NAIL CONSECRATE OM EUV TR 1 BRT? AV (The dhlraqT consecration) CONSECRATE OO VAJDA1RANT 10 I ONI TATHXGATADHARMjI CONSECRATEOM OM RATNADAIRA T CONSECRATE TRIM ARAN2 OM PA CONSECRATE HRT? OI! KARMADJRA4T CONSECRATEAV (The consecration the of 15 Secret) OBI TATB DATA-SECRET CONSECRATE01! obi VAJRA-SECRET CONSECRATEH[TM Or RA'INA-SECRET CONSECRATE TRAM OBI PATNA-SEKRET CONSECRATEHRTV 20 01J KARMA-SECRET CONSECRATEABI (The consecration the of Great Bliss) 01! WISDOM AND MEANS UNION CONSECRATE H9V AV Having 45b the formula disc, gesture his of hands. and raising Having long for this like shining the Below him his hands worshipped he should in the with the of elixir five of the with draw a devotee posture the He draws moon, adorned and fearlessness, giving he should manner convey (45b) 3TI! A. 01! VAJRA LONG LIFE life: as follows. is this in consecrations increases which The sädhana on a lunar the performed Lord all Va rä looking from trickling at upwards the making ornaments, immortality the Lord afijali. he should offerings, perform the Lord marking and recites Then he notices or fire comes out; it with the throughout a scent, a brilliance vajra the (held) whole a fragrance of rays in the left hant. 30 recitations the the image. the time full thousand front At times in hundred of of one he performs the great worship. Taking butter of a brown cow he puts it a new dish 25 seated He meditates moon in on night. unknown shines before forth. arises; heat or smoke 35 51 (46a) 46a butter these When fresh or butter, bones, flesh blood, and the rite He takes or sign life the If he becomes is no doubt does not sign of wisdom, without possessed for a hundred years. living As for other no doubt is clarified intoxicating liquor, the protective At dawn he performs as long the sun and the moon. obtain the lowest this world, he will least it. drink or as the living very it eat 5 it. he will be free in diseases of hair, and grey wrinkles a firm having body and 10 rites, and so forth, subduing There the either milk, sour he should At about appear, he arranges water, himself Vajrasattva. of There milk, suitable. purified comes about, on the achievement. else anything appear, signs sesame oil, or Having rest. the If and other the namely he will for rite gaining pacifying, them unhesitatingly perform prosperity, by mere recitation. it. about THE MAýDALAOF THE FCNR GREATKINGS The Four 46b Great Kings each one of us will of his pronounce beings. living all bowed before May the the spell Lord give Va ra g&i Lord for the benefit, his consent, '0 Lord, and said: 15 and happiness(46b) welfare may Vaj radhrk his give consent'. good, 0 Great 'Good the Vaivar}a, the In and blessing, Dh:rtaräýra, same ray his emitted king Kumbhiglas, of and bless the received from spell the the joy with Yakgas, having the of I approve his Gan your pledge'. 20 Lord's hearts 0!! VAIV. his pronounced OBI DHN. spells rG4haka, the Vi_ap kfa the great king of the great king of the Nägaa, acting his pranounced in the 0Ni VII. spells same way pronounced is having four In the gates and decorated circles. with five (47a) he draw the i looking Lord impressive. On his left Vajrapä should centre 1jholding in his hands a mace and a mongoose, he should draw the Good Vairava ornaments, seated firmly adorned with jewel on a lion seat, golden in colour It and looking square, adorned holding floods intent with the all guardians for In a v! He is ornaments. To the and to west his of jewels. of on playing a sword, conspicuous The wise one should splendid. so on showering rä91ra 25 011 KEA . is their maqja1.4 spell: This 47a speak up. king great encouragement approval, his Kinge, the red the eyes gates in front of the beautiful, right he should Viritpäkga holding and having all draw him with the seven portals. a beautiful Lord he should dark green the snake draw the best hoods. vase and draw Iota=. in colour and Hero Vir vajra. -noose, Similarly 30 lhaka he draws 35 52 Then the 47b mantrin himself enter should the he First summon this should group. (47b) the them should worship wise one vessels presenting of the mantras made of flowers, garlands applying the and then Lord them in Hating Kings. the with accordance for assigned gesture summone.: rite, offerings. containing Next the-knower the should 5 adorned with pupils warrior, hAhRa' a or anyone lineage. of royal whether his introduce S V_ PLEDGE O? following the Vajradhara's by mantras and means of gesture else, RECEIVE VAV OM these be thrown HU?!. A flower wordss or a jewel with should for the king towards whom it falls, not otherwise. 0 NlGI? F! OTTES. It is effective Than he should perform The fifth corners. By drawing the aala maYl, a king consecration be consecrated one should being as above, not the with four with the the and performing a king, one becomes vases due order in consecration one becomes a king being Va ra äßi. of gesture 10 the in standing a great one. As a result 48a the of the one becomes four lord glorious and entering consecrations the Jambudvipa, of four the king noble gates (48a) Four Conti- king together the of 15 nents. Vajradhara 1I. King for 'As his with us, the and those famine, diseases, death, and DhrtaräV rity together this If tions. his who are beasts we will kingdom whole to wicked V rü rest. definitely In him. fulfil we will äßi so, Va ra would his all of MTt uu security provide 20 prospe- promote inauspiciäns destroy will fear the remove will Viremlk4a destroy We will We will Vai= short that protect and cities. aka will and companions. and the were not always and calamities. tranguillity. famine eliminate will Kings, plagues ra his with Great Four and servants, retinues kingdoms hostile will my own son. ' him like protect and 25 expecta- be offended'. M 4P-ALA OF THE GUARDIANS OF THE TEN DIRECTIONS The Guardians 48b '0 Lord, every 'Good is He should lord of oft AV their similarly his for spell Lord the benefit and said: (48b) and happiness their the Spirits, World, good good, speak up'. and others oM J their pronounced spells. OZ VAS orvRAV3 35 maz}qala37 the of the LKE and In_th put in the of OZ YAK draw Guardians Ada pronounce the 30 orbYA1 0t4KUV ooA the Ten Directions good, 0 Guardians obi 2 This bowed before beings'. =ääna, the WI of one of us will living all of the mandals, as before Directions in forward(to zenith positions. their with the appropriate and nadir), Lord in the quarters and the He places centre. with Guardians the of two, the Gates 53 Ile summons them and worships them in every Having way. himself entered he should introduce his pupils. He should consecrate them with the vases blessed In his with the mantras of the Guardians of the Directions and the others. desire for success he should pronounce the spell for conjuring them forth. 49* The Guardian. the of Direotione are produced (49a) delay without in their 5 position.. Then in their be he a king or or joy always We will destroy of flowers grain, Yama, the great on that king bestow ja Ja and receives . a son or a daughter of(our and everywhere hostile on the consecrated this who enters who believes, whether 0 Lord, we will harvests '0 Lord, anyone said: a worrior, someone else cover. they him with provide kingdoms, shower the consecration, ) lineage, security, from rains forehead, and LO protection to time time, produce and fruits'. dharma.. king, longevity bowed before and I shall the Lord the obstruct '0 Lord, and said: kinds eight I shall of untimely death'. 15 Naircta, to 49b king, that the fear untimely death. always thiss'0 said any other I will person, security, regard not Räk a.sas and others, of them with provide Lord, with cause fear or protection of and (49b) cover'. 20 I will missiles. The lord of fears, with the regard to of activities the quarter great that king of I will the being, great of the Yakgas, will war . lords in abundance. and grain wealth people, of care ! and in the regions N provide king, '0 Lord, not and estates, poisonous I will produce never that cause unexpected winds, 25 great remove and fruits'. Yakgas, bowed. before I together persevere prince, beyond, protection, and punishment, harvests secure discharge not and every- (50a) with in removing the Lord the every and said: '0 eighty eight great fear. I will Lord, give 30 I will his country his protect and provinces, friends, sons, daughter, wives and the rest. I will take relatives, that always security, I will s. oxen, cows, asses, camels, sheep, elephants, the Spirits, nna, the lord bowed before of all to sword king, his regard with h,,, aervants, said: flowers 'O Lord, I will death'. untimely by winds. grain, that the of all and provide Kuvera, kingdom wind Nagas, said: the of obstruct to be terrified being king whole harmful and prevent all great the protect where 50b or and Piää, cas, fear I will Varu4a, the 50a Pretas of RVasas, the of bbhmar; atworrior prince, diseases, lord great counteracting (50b)I will warrior the goats Lord or br. hmaca, I will tranquillity him with poison, and the refuge imMLnity stability a va ra-enclcsure rest'. '0 Lord, and said: guarantee and happiness, and destroying provide ateeds, to of the borders, made of 35 54 and a va ra-canopy. va ray-darts, indication of is obstruction AkI the who is or warrior, or his son, brahmana lineage, or anyone of I will fulfil who believes. merchant, I will before my entourage I will and cover. aim of son or give security by the Lunar in the before made obeisance peasant, remove be assisted'. always every 5 brahmaZa minister, with approaching He will Regions, tower always son, warrior, no with success prince, protection security, the explain Lord that sovereign (our) daughter of fears. all 10 or his I myself him'. protect will (51a) '0 Lord, and said: lord I will sky, made obeisance king, that I myself disease. every every give the in to regard give to be done. not I will not. moving a journey, making the Mahävaräha, 5la of and avert obstacles all those and everywhere always will lord '0 Lord, with and said: is and give necessities all rites'. of performers the ao rin, Lord good and what the to is him in assist be done and what to is what a dream what in I will MA3 ALA OF THE EIGHT GREAT PLANETS Great The Eight of us together everyone Lord Planets good, 0 Great 'Good his with pronounce will entourage his '0 Lord, 16 this: said May the spell. blessing'. his give attended Mansions The the Great Planets, my blessing, I give Sun and the Planets, speak up'. before made obeisance rest the Lord 20 and said: 05 XJ o5 SOUOrbAV 05 BUI 9AV OM o5 xäV39 of vi on MV This In 51b their maz als. centre he draws the Lord over the Threefold is the Trailokyavijaya(Victor four the great mudra& front In of having Vajraplgi the World). On all he should Lord form the sides draw of (51b) 25 he should ukra(Venus) draw and haspati(Jupiter) draw to B, he the back Soma(Moon). To and the should right, at äditya(San) to the norththe to left Vadha(Meraury)t Apgära(Mars) south-east, the (Ssizer Ssnifioara(Saturn) in the the the R to 30 sun) of north-east, west, he the the Rk All on orbit should outer round alas(south-west). quarter of Mansions) and in each gate a guardian looking wrathful, draw the Naklatras(Lunar the gesture of) Vajradhara, he should summon Having entered (by applying Then he should lead in his pupils. then all by means of Vajräipkulia and others. 05 VAJRA-DESTROY HUNTPEAT 42 35 01 THE PLEDGE OF THE VAJRA-PLANETS I PHA'' 011 VAJRA-PLANETS RECEIVE, O PLEDGE HU5 He should perform the wer mantras of he should the Eight coerge the consecration Planets all the and with Planets. with the the eight vases blessed vajra-gesture. By acting with in this 55 52a (52a)The Great to that regard with Planets king do everything where never we will our it and ViVI violate in made obeisance orders that of We will protect and trade places. When a great and every- always will the We will fear cities, establishments, oomes, and we are 5 him like protect king's wholecoantry, Lord, and saids'0 manner similar being. great Karaga, Tithi, then worshipped have no effect'. certainly will Lord, and saids'O Kgaaa, Lava. l4ihürta, ma3aaala, NakVatras, own master. towns Lord Planets we Eight or prince, the of Lagna the precisely'. The divinities Yoga, RUi, before made obeisance M 4T ALA OF THE EIGHT GREAT NAGAS 52b The Eight this: i, and said HUT; 'Good Great Nägas '0 Lord, we will good, 0 Great they Rejoicing Nägas, pronounce OM PHUM OM PHH OBI PHTJ OM PHEV 0M PHAI V their the he draws maz4ala the Mahoragaa, threatening Tak$aka, KarkoIa, In they short hoods. all to are the set he should their the the entered, JAI pain in raised the their with the neck. and food oblations, kinds of for(53a) syllable Nagas are 25 preparations. a hood PHR47 syllable are 20 accordingly. him about -the they whether the by Hooded Ones by means of with magOala), of hoods, by Ananta, resplendent clasping summons the All Väruna with centre surrounded snake honey, and different milk, venom. e is seven the In petals. petal, adorned deceiving the heads provide that great with great kings PHUM,thus or warriors, removing the impu- by mere mentioning coersed be burst being to time himself; in that constant strength we will Lord case shower in 30 with the Lord's their we deceive teaching, then let us be burned with hot sand (53b) We vajra. will always security protection, and vigour. and holding Lord, ahould delight a heated open with with the supplicationt'O and takes mandala Lord initiative, prom time this offered this one who enters before made obeisance aSjali our ctive. vases vajra-master the seated4 one on every them by reciting of well and a consort eight into(the consecrate eight Padma and Hü1KVAt4 HOV together them all and let act of us'. names. we are 53b and said: with Saipkhapäla, butter, (The Nägas)rejoiced, hands Lord and having appearance hoods of including and the spells'. all syllable(52b) 15 lotus be drawn there Leading of spells secret the Vajrapär}i Väsuki, seven and by reciting of his has Having rity in Kulika, divinities the secret the of 44 oMPHAUV white Lord Everyone He places sound maq4ala. draw a large He should the with the your before made obeisance OM PHA is Lord pronounce Olf PHUT This 53a the gladdened We will rains. and cover. render We will the We will venom ineffe- discharge all our 35 56 feart9 all carried with 54a the it in with the the Va j ra- like the out a snake-noose, body, bones and garlanded on the sacred rays. He should envisage PHUM (54a) and summoning of syllable draw he should 5 maditating venöaý he meditates by a garland surrounded hoods snake with the to regard Breathing the all out 10 venom and flesh. Then he should perform He should remove rest. the all it all just the Great the Lord fist; his with the of ritessburning and venom, antidote how much more easily hood-gesture. the with PIU]t. syllable in located Having PHJr syllable head surrounded times thousand PBZTI1one hundred his rays. hand formed his coiusnd syllable with white the of mag4ala the recite beautiful of One and of Victorous of evocation. Vajradhara Lord on the the the Destroying out'. Now the rite He should that ensure we will is dhara untimely and shower missiless on all rains kingdoms. hostile the MPJ ALA OF THE NINE BHAIRAVAS lord the Mahäbhairava, before MätpC s, made obeisance and the being others We will deranged. faces benefit. terrified their with May the Lord minds 20 give blessing'. his those of 0 Good Bhairava good, Mahlbhairava, 'Good the all heavenly Then Mahäbhairava your pronounce Mät: rkäs'. the making Bhairavas of noise said: 25 011 BHXV SVäHA Ok! BHTV sVXBX 0V BICV SVAIX (54b) 01;1 BHAIýI SVÄB1 0 ok BHAJJ SVX1 to Lord, these drawn Having Vajrap5Vi, very the wrathful great In Eight every offerings the will. should circle In the of the filled of with blood. good quality, head, and eight vases command'. Bhairavl. position a wrathful Mät# vessels of the all :, their spokes faces feet its he draws The rest he should wrathful centre Aqkuäa in filled either the with with 31 he draw and angry. 35 guardian. He places filled together with in place At his their with one should spokes as Trilokavijaya. Bhairavas central together draw the obeying eight with and appearing lord OM BHEV SVIRX 51 O!! BHA sv x 52 summoned them by means of Having a skull a big Bhairavaa Eight ma3Wa Bhairavas gate SVAH1 the wrathful draw at should BII)V are their is This the and own spell BHAIRAVA BHAI t SVX}} O 54b about wander their for spells our gods, Nägas frightened, are sunk down and they are pronounce Mät1kls 16 Great Eight the Lord, all and saids'O of me and the afraid Their and agitated. of by the Gods, surrounded and others intoxicating mar4ala blood, blood he worships or a skull them using liquor, and remains intoxicating liquor. flesh, from (5554) 57 Then the 55a Next he should with the the of the He performs pupils. Kat ks thousand an offering group the of Mät# s. intoxicating liquid. is your he will the his with wish? '. give substance He will Continents. the state the threefold a Vidyadhara of laughs ii, the syllable the immediately. filled joyful the elixir of and Lower state fearless. a Vidy$. dhara his over 'What(55b) the granting Wheel oýrtr Over, ever the 15 Pour and Rk kä. I't; alas, over sovereignty and his Stages, Trident, and the Yak$as them Bhairava One pronounces frightened one get one or withlO says and Sword, entourage Should fearless flesh with Cakravartin, boon. Baving granted and goes away. the supremacy 5 Remembering Besides life, palace four the gratified' Regions, Indra, of the and accompanied either heart. accordance He sees Bhairava, Bhairavas is' in in blood. filled vases. worship Bhairava, his eight recitations them he becomes with the either lord with Eight own submissiveness, desired any other can obtain it and of his world, of destroyed Hsaven, Earth the the them a skull grant give perform by the containing over sovereignty he should roar ferociousness He should world, On seeing offer of threefold a skull surrounded HR4 he should Bhairava the with the 'syllable 55b place, Hearing and malevolent, wrathful by the a solitary times. the made an act introduce should and with a skull Having of World Threefold with rites. subduing in or present should the way for the over consecration perform best hundred Victor Excellent 20 one would A OF TAE GREAT GODS MAýTýAI, The Great 10 Lord, with out of Gods, Brahmä and others, your permission compassion his give we also will or GAI o? IAI This their is He should design the back great the the maz ala power, potent, Having entered, left and said: May the ordinance. Lord 25 their spells. as before. him the hero In Iivara manner he should centre a trident with to Cakrapägi(Viqqu); similar the the he draws in right the in Indra draw his 30 hand; making his maag4ala their of the gates. he should beautiful the our Lord 53 o1 ICA mac ala In and the quardians Outside of Bra m ; to 54 of hand-gesture. appropriate consorts the In front Trailokyavijaya. at oII Bx ma4jtala explain the blessing'. Now Brahmä and other gods pronounce (56a) OM RUV OII VIV OM 01ý oM Iii 56a before made obeisance wise place vases and filled bowlif, 5and the items and so forth. one summons the gods: JAtI HITM VAM HOJI ALL GODS PLEASE ENTER THIS EXCELLENT PLACE. On seeing them he should worship by applying with great joy. He should lead in his pupils Vajradhara's them gesture. 35 58 Obi GREAT BEINGS R.FEEIVE THEM BY THE COMMANDOF VAJRADHARA HUZ HA HA HA 3JV. (56b) he their throw flowers in the They eyes and should manner, open proper 56b make them look(into from is the to the or gods, the and other with highest very accordance the with Tell one, think The one who knows all the in the sky, royal (57a) and said: Mahe&ivara '0 Lord, into who enter the path that the path of Buddhahood, towns, trade We will grant the of the state guard the kingship. Tathägata, the all gods this and Lower Regions. Vi gr}u and Mahe ävara' . Earth all of from life, success. 15 invieibility, the we will before of of At all We will king's or grant times we will(SA) cities, 25 establishments. We will shelters. We will continents, the show protect sovereignty. four 20 judgment, right We will and cattle who has indicate righteousness, afflictions. and the Lord those We will above. path the of obstructions world fears. all villages king the Vajradhara. one, two, three short highest of obstructions, dominion, the the themselves of Bliss, and of regions, over for best'. the you we may give elixir the of without the you desire. boon which and so forth. or path and cover In the and free promote gods remove world path territories, We will the gods prostrated gods will kingdom, the the do you and says 'What night willingly ask a Bodhisattva sovereignty universal other renunciation of the of kingship i1 the protection places, the of coer$s always li&ga a single a shrine should he desires, heaven, the Good Doctrine, security, provide to grant things the a mar4ala middle should and the nirvä4a, in and speak up, so that insi we all leads determination, 57A mantras for 57a We will the ask moving the promptly He should is 5 10 him in us quickly! 0 fortunate of The coerler relics. where Vajrapl4i, thousand them 2ßvara for there which rite. The gods approach desire? place a place rite perfect Goer' taken water one hundred should coerser ones, in the at the that grant veneration a pleasing times them using consecrate He should mantras. Making thousand such places, or and other 41 a caitya containing or, in the gods. two hundred He should maz4ala). blessed vases delightful times the state grant Heaven, over Sakra, Brahmä, of 30 n'IM ALA OF THE KING OF LONG LIFE The Lord Vajrapki once more looked of his at the circle assembly and The mazdala of the assembly was moved, much moved, animated, much animated, smiled. enthused, much enthused, overjoyed, much overjoyed, floricsome, very floricsome. 35 On occount 58a Brabmä and others, prostrated for your this of (58a) themselves smiling' miracle the before The Lord many wonderful assembly the of Lord Buddhas events gods, overwhelmed and said: or Bodhisattvas seen in were do not world. amazement, with '0 Lord, what the is smile the reason without reason, 59 the Let Lord Vajrapl The Lord for his smiling'. i listened to the gods asking gods, Brahmä and the '0 Buddhas of hair mighty living the which and the power inauspicious beings and they M;Ftyu away from are led are overwhelmed path the with the understand the supreme and the others, formula of from the syllable the the of Lord, 'Good'. (58b) having shore, and by means other those eclipsed who are born living and those away from turn the formula the those death, destinies, it, 10 by in misfortune beings who expedience and with Enlightenment'. listened the the longevity, gain sapsära and perfect emitted all life evil of having previous power before explain to untimely all fear Vajrapki, The Lord from of mighty themselves recited please leading short freed are force of the by all 5 prostrated tingled great and said: death'. untimely their instruction tyu, the I destroys which for was explained what good 0 Lord, good good 0 Vajradhara, 'Good the to Gods, Brahmä and others, rejoioing; greatly formula destroying The Great listen rest, the concerning formula-mantra 58b reason the explain Vajra request of Brahma Body, Speech, and Mind, the his of beseeching the to 15 spell- Tathägatas: 0M MERIT MERIT, GREAT MERIT, MERIT OF UNLIMITED LIFE, ACCUMULATION OF MASSES 57 OF KNOWLEDGES OM HRi? M1n[. This is OM B}IRUI, SV. BX. This OM TRUM SVAII. EX. OkI TRY4 S Ol,4 HAT$SVB. 59a This is the Tathägata the Totality BHRQk4. In is is is is the This is the is the the the of spell-formula subordinate spell. formula. spell-impelling (formula). spell predominant (59a) formula. secret 25 ma;?Iala of with four Aparimitäyu4ipu called Life, him is is is The spell TRUM. To the syllable One Bestowing centre one should him is Noble Fearlessness). the syllable right is is is the HR 1. of syllable To the IkUagarbha. The left 30 known as Avalokite'vara The spell place King The spell and Knowledge). Vajrapäni. the the In spokes. yaj? iänasapbhäratejorlja(Glorious Merit TRXM. Behind syllable Abhaywpdada(The 20 spell-formula. majala The spell the formula. spell 59 their front the subordinate the of Unlimited Krodha. spell the This This One designs is the syllable HAS[. Tathlgata maraWa. One are to be depicted in this brilliant 60 there place a set of five or a set of eight vases blessed with the mantra should incense and the rest, and other items of worship blessed with 35 of Cakravartin, the wrathful mantra for all the rites, as well as the guardians in all the gates. The Vidyäs The mantrin 59b by the host The Vidyä of is enters his himself and summons the sons and attendants, to be depicted on the left Most and together side of the Blessed with One surrounded his(59b) Blessed one, Vidyä. 6o himself, He consecrates thousand one hundred or Avalokiteävara. he is concentrating well in In front times. Vajradhara the sits he is the him he sees either of the He receives then and makes the posture paryaipka to able every perform Tathägata to his boon according recitation or When wish. by application act of his mind. Initiation 5 the of introduce He should his nce he sayss self-confi61 of pupils have them throw THE PLEDGE. Putting 60a In gesture. TATIIGATA a state PLEDGE. OV ALL THE TATI GATAS RECEIVE BOAT, YOU ARE on their heads he should the give 11 consecration. (60a) OBI ALL THE TATI GATAS CONSECRATE,VAJRADHARA COMMAND114 BBI obi VAJRAVAJRA CONSECRATE HQ4 HtTh O! VAJRARATNA CONSECRATEHQN! TRACK OBI VAJRAPAIMA CONSECRATE HU11HRt11 OM KARMAVISVA CONSECRATEAJJ HQ4 KAM is not the been not and the pledge his The pledge precept-consecration. who are his feet and the vinities, signs (60b) above. world The wise cious do harm to he should give honouring his then to speak possessions resort to Three the for in in acting in order someone else's of living the in rest, mantras the the to protect beings. the of wealth benefit those from of the sake of his 25 teaching the avari30 sin, and who ones purpose of for use in he thinks in pledge, the sädhana, for ones. is his the this avaricious beings The one who knows di- of avaricious the the living or the on abusing to pledge, of of the destroy the Buddhas, if not world For the He will this attached of divi- shadows should wealth the the in 20 not name of a, nor and intent destitution. the mud subverted accomplishing taking woman for who are the sons of for are Dharma, who are who live the they the diseases. of offerings, and the Taking likewise life those by means of those the of the the certainly Jewels beings. justfied deceitfully and the mantras, slay worshipping he is the mudräs, whether possess teacher, The one who delights to the living it and for sagdala, manner to ones, who do not always the The mantrin teacher. the despise definitely one should of Buddha, harmful will man's He will shadow. 17 has what another he pronounce nor remainders take not approach his cross nor them he will of nor teachers not the upon teacher true He will r. things say untrue and his of Ealightenment and he will beings, living his not I he despises ever. with not Thought the Jewels, kill not despise not vajra-teach6; nities Three He will given. those to adhere tread He. will He will wie the abandon good teacher. the bestow this: He will 61 0,, PLEDGE I BOLD THE flowers: garlands Then he should 60b Vajradhara's 0ý1 VAJRADHARA,RATNADH&1A,PADMADHARA,VISVADHARA, BY ADHERENCE TO THE TATHIGATA'S He should by means of pupils 35 permitted teacher's mantras delighting may (610.) 61 the and for Buddhas protecting whether one does everything, without being the Then he gives one is more if one is imbued Vajrasattva, of place everything, one enjoys whether the in Abiding pledge. so how much the fault; in the successful compassion. with Obi I GIVE YOU THE PRECEPT OF precept-consecrations 5 1"* ABIDE VAJRA O4 VAJRA-SUCCESS. FOR THE IT ALL THE TATHAGATAS,ACCEPT him the Handing he should vajra the give OBI PERFORM ALL act-consecrations THE ACTS OF THE BUDDHAS HUM. to honour In order body, belongings, his 61b kingdom thought with else he asks of for. gaining the of The one who knows should provide the a lunar disc (arising) ask (61b) Buddhas effective offer and for and cities, servants and granddaughter* sister to his teacher method an effective any other 11 everything brings which prosperity worldly the wise the more in Merits other those of and saids'0 (62a) warrior, the enters this it, although he succeeds this the is royal short, the the the the upon samayaof process by means 20 mudrä buddhahood, confidence, of a sense due in consecration how much man ala the the of case someone else, or , peasant this who enters community, royal king, his Lord son or minister, the member of mazpla? the lowest '. good, 0 assembly of gode, Great Brahmä and others, the mag4ala you put which question it in before themselves prostrated others, fruition merchant. Learn multiplied empower in thought by that Developing as previously. Gods, Brahmä and the and having in 0 gods, me, his envisage and give and gesture in consecrated The Lord saids'Good beings. he should 16 Imagining son. successes. member ofe'border living he should seed-syllable) formsThen succeed, brä18a, is the and if his of A and concentrating centre, (viz. it Buddhas Lord, what good indeed its benefit the syllable in divine one should The Great draws the seed-syllable by means of for disposition and loyal faith envy, with without method from the yoga relating of the appropriate caste, mantras, and so he transforms to order the seed-syllable appropriate mudrä 62a he should for mother, wife, own precious he desires. which the benefit best and chariots, sons, daughters, his offer should pupil horses and grain, Then he should E lightenment the teacher, and sovereignty, the the wealth the maturation of drawn the assembly rejoices I am unable many hundred to the of in aspire thousand to me for the benefit fruits the case of it, in gods, who is reveres to explain times of the consecrated it and worships it. Such merit does not future of come up to one who in it. it, As for as I have, it, does not 62 for account 62b of the all does not it, of are even with comparison (62b) heap of merit wonderful, this the Tath. gatas'. '0 Lord, it fruits the bear is living of beings it Vajradhara, this who enter in entetng .. themselves in Vajradhara, ,0 zealous O Lord wonderful, this is We are mjala. maturation O'.Lord, we zealous, and so -on' .5 magWa THE FOUR RITES The gods prostrated beings living are Being in to subjected 0 Lord, how are the them and recite 63a life. long gain from freed form the or people (their of their for 63b medium or the who have been their effigy, minor for deadly of his flesh, bones, hair, white shining and a lotus. of the times ashes from for pacifying four cubits in 'using the freed He is mustard. or anything every with In order Planets, Lunar the entourage, in the times, and nights. the conse- hundred three as hundreds offense size, liberated; round in 20 thou- of ä are one should representation from else rite, every in of accordance with an image colour. sins In of and the the of and bowls vases 25 shape, offer his Should evil. Next he draws a crossed mudräs Mansions there place white Place servant. a sacri- name and one sacrifice (63b) this rite, 30 to destroy he draws He should nities, their sin'. rays. white outside vajra their days 15 religiary by means of the hearth) one should draw a circle In the centre(of beams light. Al4round white of on the circumference eight On the 0 gods, states, their are offenses'. the one, two or thousand seeds freed a hearth making the vajras beings son, someone of seven thousand five evil consecrate and they merit consecrate as many times times, the in destinies evil of of it, living the action name or times name two hundred who commit them in their their seven thousand placed reborn consecrate obstructions his '. this spirits 10 behalf? become possessed they manpla who commit large, one hundred he becomes maaz4a1a. Having By means of among tormented hells, in limited. merit pacifying6 to Devaputras, small, the At least, hundred how much more those The rite on their someone bearing the Even those times. sands from four thousantimes, act consecrate in 0 gods, recite crations. we to those lineage, freed born Lord, there and saids'0 and their short are merit, divinity. representation) One becomes fice for name(card), their of of (63a)As their in is they Dharsa'-syllable. Destitute evil. consecrate or them here gods, place same manner whose life destinies evil or among animals. '0 Jambudvipa the short, blazing forth he draws five vajra, a vajra, he should naive the different the outer Guardians Lord filled he draws Vajra of painted with the Family, the on a cloth offerings design World in the tipped a jewel, mud.räa. signs of 35 accordingly. together and food accordance for with with divithe rules 63 64a fearless the Buddha, having the a of in appearance Clad a white garment, and (64a) destiny being that living should offer evil experiencing one remembering the to home in of obstructions eliminate order of sacrifices series a whole honey, together butter parched rice and with milk and sins, using clarified his mixed mustard white for or using things, and similar 5 or just him the for rite the most 67 gaining Once he is prosperity born in gaining eight in cubits draw a lotus he should draw jewels the devided seals draw the seals Clad in of a happy the rite for the length 64b the for of golden like lotus centre to it. All around he draws in mantras should always sandal red The rite ming to the for rite the most nine the centre, with Clubs, marked with he should adorn bowls for where skulls it offerings filled around mark same way he should the others. the one who is and for behalf for increase All he should outside In on his in that his 15 expe- prosperity creature embodied rest in red of to his become subdued attached living that with being, butter, clarified with together lotuses an arrow its In size. it. and remembering mixed saffron in The one accomplished colour. outside 20 subjugation. cubits a bow with it of for rite four two or top colour, or red the benefit his same on the red red 25 powder fruits. All power. 69 the evil destroying. the On the 10 centre colour. golden at or and good fortune. using destroy cubits of its in sides. and remembering perform for do the destroying In order four Aipkada and the bows and arrows a garment and the for two or Families., a bow, one or 'wood, red" floioers divinities the Five and on the a homa sacrifice he offers hearth, rays He should perform shaped with for 68 he should a red perform lotuses. colour, fame, reputation, he draws Adorned the of he should subjugation He makes a hearth one should edge on all radiating divinities, outer wise an' edges prosperity. life, Next(64b) having a jewel sets destiny, gaining of atate, and on the into the He makes a square size, with a garment riencing The rite a happy prosperity. he should of bones his name(card). The rite 65a together, in brim heads, He makes a hearth triangular size, surrounded " tridents as before and lots with ones opposed blood with of in with for and flesh. him, he should tridents the or three a nine-tipped and crossed He plaoes divinities. vajras, in He also or it at 31 in vajra On the vajra-axes. on perfor- embark two and a half form, with and pointed a third series., food to (65a) and outside vases places and every- 35 64 The fierce destroy the his obstructions, of world of obstructions the from Freed to the all himself, one, Trailokyavijayin or men in gods sins and so on of sine totally that should garment, creature. embodied he will destroyed, threefold the a black wearing happily progress sphere. live those to in the who He should act promptly same manner with regard It should happen accordingly in the case of those on whose in this life. the behalf As for the is action all taken. other he should rites, happiness of attainment 5 for perform living beings is this In them as previously. way immediately. achieved PRAISES OF THOSE WHO PROMOTE THIS KALPARXJA(ROYAL WORK) 65b The gods, Brahmä Lord for written and the subjects, rest will how much more if his promote mounted will or with this the in Vajrasattva the form of this abide should form Lord worship, his oountry, this Kalparäja (our) its that it rank abundance; (66a)provisions We will he set should his great grant women, and peaoe. 20 the of 15 his and subjects, in that of has been invocations. top own our son or and towns, all villages the recognise or his people on the and so forth, like as it their with and grain put we gods, Brahmä teaching or 11 the or has it lineage king sustenance, through beings, provinces, wealth Kalparäja places this of accordance prosperity, wandering We will the entourage 66b trade in of joy, bowed before banner royal out himself deadly being calamitie0 by servitude 25 submission. Wherever present in daughter sovereignty with living of resolutely provide bestow on an elephant, filial filled one who writes son or protect cities, be eliminated. the mantras We will rest. into the the daughters; and sons men, Should a believer and enter to he follows extend sovereignty, and the others, that protect We will (65b) good and happiness who expounds minister crops regard benefit, the explained. 66a 'With and said: and the of be practiced, Vajrasattva Samantabhadra, Kalparäja. there we veneratet We pray we pray with his who fulfils that all that the bodies. glorified all the Lord that We pray hopes, may abide Tathägatas may be Vajrapki together there in with and -may that part of the earth become a caitya. (66b) We gods, Brahmä and the rest, are we protect. their We 30 servants hermit, this Kalparäja. the vajra-teaoher that We will great who practises of like to him by to obey every order. We will and slaves ready serve grant stand every benefit, happiness and complete success. 0 Lord, in short, we will wipe the ship dust of his feet him and follow with behind our him. heads. 0 Lord, we venerate him. 0 Lord, we wor- 35 s 65 0 Lord9we magOala 674L, that pray may become our Samantabhadra sattva, is good that Accomplish it masters. the The Lord Vajrapä$i It living the Great beings and are 0 Lord, we recognise B1iss. addressed by euch a devotion well'. who enter We recognise the gods, Brahm to the aharma in consecrated him as Vajrapägi, him as the the Vajra- Tathägatat. and the others you make this sayings true vow. (67 ) 66 CILITTER III OF CAKRAVARTIN MATS _LA The Lord and spells, Vairanäni in pronounced his OM BFRUt4 TI order the or Vairasattva to the right Buddhas. On the order. Further outside Ones. the Great the Sages. Miansions, the spirits and animals, the that Four the But fortnight? mancýala six fault. The rite on the fifth, better dalas which in to refer the dark the manJalas but seventh, the of the the Planets, 15 Directions. tormented hells, and to on the the the the is Padmahasta of the light ma 4ala 20 is recommended full moon. The manones (68a) should Wrathful Buddha ma galas For day in fortnight especially rites fortnight. dark the fierce the Guardians and etc, accompanied mandala on a suitable in even of making on the this others, TO PUPILS when recommended, at and others of existence, 4 spheres diligence with Bhikýuuss, Xnanda 10 due and the Maitreya the all Va'ra-)Sattvas-in he draws Brahma 3He also draws in and the north he places where the the he draws gods and titans. men, a circle the to Padmapani; west Bodhi-)Sattvas, Kings, the to he draws that AND INSTRUCTIONS GIV 1 He draws be drawn he draws outside of he draws outside INITIATION 68a he draws and entourage. Further not of outside consorts Lunar the outside further Yet On the by their that the to he should draw Vaira (east) Vairathe front centre Bliss; Great &i; of outside (67b) the the In as previously. ' mantabhadra (south) Rat On the VLAyapäni. 67b man.1 or HU 1 SRAJi. JRA BUM SAU. 0I1 VAJ 25 ma ßi He draws g; OL4 lffj%'1. OI1 VAJRA HUI"f PHAT. V&ZEALZJ7, ABIDE FIRMLY FUI their is all strengthen formulas, the mantras, own spell. OM FIRM VAyý A HJIýI. OM This to full moon is especially 25 recommended. He should himself apply He narks the eastern projects mentally the arrangement tan trans. gentle, agreeably just ai t ala. wearing la with a white together spotless, with ted and purified the wrathful his his with divinities. pure the pupils. scented In of in creating the mantra in and thoughtful The place water, the form, centre for the the the the self-existing rising sun. teacher man1ala the is practice morning, and consecrated he fixes the Next Based upon mantras marýdala. Then early pure of by means of direction pupils. garment, the towards with the disposition out 29 cleansed, the manqa_ smeared, anoin- approaches has been and carried thoroughly he mantras (of of the divi- 67 by means of nities) the by applying Taking 68b the mantra scent the formula of flowers and so forth, of He should gods. bless He should it in mark a a. water accordance without the the the the of number in due measure known as the spell sandal wood, (68b) the 5 scent, with blessed mantras. with and incensing flowers adding in enlightenment great and incense an oblation fingers times seven recite hand a tooth-pick too not water, -A twelve ground, he worships with his thick made of too or wound round he should 'ly mazdala. he should the rites rite. substance, of spell that the with scented fragrant with After present notches, washed with hand, mixed with Then touching wood, his the all perform on the a circle reciting also the controls which with He should spells. he delineates and motioning size, Family thin, a thread7, with The number concerned. and smeared times seven depends tooth-picks on *tips. make them chew the One by one he should pupils. the of just or length, in incensed many times recite fingers twelve 10 afivattha or audumbara 15 for the protective rite wise one himself performs with resolution (69a); he offers the homa sacrifice firewood using which has been pupils Then the 69a his butter clarified first his of the or rite and homy this place because accordance for them is the raised it water and thus the raised their The wise scent the Family of Family of Hayagriva Vera Family of Slumbha the four cles he is fear is said common to to be the it the is of and those he should Wrathful the Formula active spell times. of has ten all Families. Cuhyakas. the Since makes his hand the Royal already rites. 30 with Formula. has one syllable. magical with attention smeared In In and in syllables, yet heads full seven has great in their With Formula Royal who have ones. them with master who have not sprinkle recitation Formula the it, 25 seated the those and The procedure garments, First get position vows. white places. raise times Three their he should the Royal Royal lord their -Next of the the the the in by touching seven I1DT syllables, 1lmrtakundali it. Cakravartin Lotus with of and performs (69b) dressed to recitations one dispels take and then Eilightenment heads homa 21 pacifying them in place should arrange Refuge and by reciting Buddha he should they he should the with and furthermore the perform the In curds. with influences, evil he should Next be clean, must of prepared together, mixed sins. be reminded should blessed them). ability 't'hreefold Thought he touches 69b their they and rice carefully, pupils with him, (for butter and clarified to nullify order nullifying his this: sesame seeds offerings, done in one for in them take is concern Examining facing butter, clarified with smeared power. the the 35 dowed The l-lrathful he removes all the obsta- 68 Touching the to all Royal the with things. He should 70a the in 'hands in splitting without thrown highest formulas the falls pointing There is (70b) should arise three his with plicate the mandala it orderly method: to is. mandala the of mantras, great those who possess the best of state. may you deign all Having offered spoken stanzas of thus, praise success underworld. is and the ärä purpose of in the insight. I of will produce your to make your he should request one whose worshipping to the before towards in them to the with 30 and by reverence in its me and my pupils, the the me, of doctrine, in I wish Compassionate endowed a name, 25 you. grant divinities Buddha's this you, such and such a marýJa.la appearance he makes obeisance the deign 20 sup- I bow before by beings compassion he and scatters by applying Buddhas, such and such drunk, again of and other the He one should a, 0 Lord world-protectors, who delight once mantra 0 Vi and Bodhisattvas, as before. thoughtful the compasgion. give have comes about the should master When they recite and for By showing united the and seated the and such a one, my ability, self-existing and 10 way and 15 any other in the He worships divinities the of by those divine east east, the north, in success drink. Hay I be remembeVby by Arhats power, the thrown washed to he should my pupils by deities the towards tip rites, made devotions, such favour. world, (71a) the whose essence this magical and to for compassion all everyone Hirst '0 Lord, the them one by one. The summoning devotee, Lords for Having divinities, draw the your hand. to who are pupils palmfuls and approach relates activates his to is the face be ]mown as one's towards it If distribute event. which water incense Out of 71a mantra scented give this of falls it their who hold When a tooth-pick side. the 5 man1a1a them thoroughly should with the He should Chewing the He throws in pupils, north. rice accordance water. The pupils it then world. it the seated. upwards If this of them to front, falls then downwards, the should to relates no doubt With 70b in in recitations his with with place scented with maiýdala). throw known as middling. is success outside filled is appropriate towards (the and falls and bless group those of not and incense resumed the and look For whom it the With of hey should correctly success. (70a) order applicable which an oblation offer correct tooth-picks and chew the of the water in it place gesture mantra consecration, consecration af! jali tooth-picks the the perform the incense. and sprinkles he should is vase and he should rule flowers for the the recite with sprinkle Formula and other the He should rites* he should heads them on the ma jala. Lord depart. ' and then 35 having 69 Having thoughtful the the one should in Early east. Buddha of precept for intoxicants, the nor offerings, nor the abuse Thought cause and the to your short, of of the ten vajra he should a Cakravartin, universal his concede head with the one is 72h uncertainty divinities and 20 consecrated of request his may be 25 sins who desires pupil" the may gain and so that etc, sovereignty they to jewels, his own position, he should treasures, his sons, offer to grain, his gold daughters, He obtains other is world; said that experiences complete happiness he obtains here Buddhahood whoever despises constant sorrow. the on earth and gold accom- pieces, well disposed offer himself and the highest more, va ra-teacher, the one should things men and women, villa-30 how the much - Therefore the master not bliss equal mind. to his happiness of of despise The yogin his va ra. -brethren should not despise or his sisters 13 l?e should not cause contention. He should not tolerate va ra-rnother. teacher. his You rites. duly them so that consecrate his fee with He should present as desired. ges and cities In short, in order to achieve he should progress, a rapid Buddhas,, 15 of vases and the rest, and becomes (72 conseorations a) . Then taking the seven Jewels, and the bell. devotion, lie offers houses, chariots, It the set complete rest, he desires. the orders You must seals. the Tantra, spells, mantras. Bowing in the have no doubt, faith, such a fervent the them the to He should the master. the demoniac 10 harm living dishouner not the of perform this own self, IJishing not drink disobey not You must should you given. You must symbols nor Victorious Ihlightenment, of sin. of faith(71b) You must not You must divinities, In One with and the destroyed which was with by the been acts. any time. at the shadows and the regard like guard son, has not sexual divinities. the avoid on their an initiate wheel plish and the made a vow with He commits essence the Familiesl0 seven vow uttered what unlawful Jewels, non-Buddhists. Omniscient as desired the Three take nor and the '0 and the the of pledge sayings) pledge commit You must tread pupils the meat the with laving 72a it whether in ' rest. by the take the protect beings, not mantras hesitation his master, teacher abuse must not the day, the during towards dreams their saw in they heads with peacefully what fearless should living your master. or your abandon seals, not mornint addresses nor your of he asks one remains you must success, beings, sleep passions, 5 kill Do not Ones. them to send Va ra-)nhara (The master the pupils from freed who are or not. auspicious 71b the this, Hearing night. Dharma to his the taught 12 gods* all 35 one's (72b) or 70 the Three to the Jewels, harm do or people who do the break evil who and teacher, pledge, who in this one obtains manner, By being the living towards compassionate by the promised perfection beinggs# ways. Acting Omniscient One. this and ether in his ones who despise wicked one gains rapidly. perfection 5 G OF THE, THAll-ICTIA ?DR101IN rrhen the of Lord explain and the Indra draw the draw Tathägata the 73a $ amuni holding the with (one liayagriva facing their väsini and Tärä, below one draws the and the performed a sign he succeeds with (73b) quickly. fruits, he succeeds with makaras, foojfor the flowers, in painting the he should higher, in agjali becomes it it. real. he sees If he succeeds gradually. a brä'"unana a monk, middling 20 gesture. worship see it draw one should so that and on seeing quickly fruits, that Below the a drum or a bell, 15 together he does not If Päs;dara- Taki, water plants raised eyes Locanä, drawn are Further hands the opening giving of gesture in blue a, ra symbols. and incense. his with of rite laughter, On hearing lamps below hand; appropriate draws One also on consecrating the Having of the 10 body his and aggressive, them are their masses like. scent, Then one embarks hands with and bowing seated between their filled a pool garlands, a devotee in fierce aya, below amuni; Ayalokite6vara, Noble one should right left the to okyavi divinities; holding frogs white a girl To his on a cloth. one hand and making in and Trail respective divinities, 73b godsý4 Sarvavit draws) fruit a myrobalan other* fishes, its with and happiness benefit the in his of sun and moon, and holding colour a lotus (one draws) Vajrapäzi (73a) and between them Bhaiga the colour, evocation of Lord for Sarvadurgatiparifiodhanar$ja; Sarvadurgatiparigodhanarlija having rite together world duly One should the lower or or 25 achieve- men t s15 the He consecrates front of its for true litary he should set16At copious worship times, end of a Bodhisattva until the one hundred the and performs or in gods, so far as he is him the his boon and the rest. Jewels. '"e should and to the Three the for recitations upon receive to the which lie offers always thousand accomplishment he envisages recitation the complete do this. of being In their lie offers the for the ask always offering whole he sees Bowing success. a so- the as before. absence, Lord 35 delighted, down, to 30 six mantras he should an appropriate or Then in one night171f The divinities, times its occurs. m01. ala worthy, rite He contemplates hundred times in the He performs circumstances. and eight Seated mudras. Trailokyavijaya. of sign bestow perfection to three he aspires. (74a) fruit of highest will recitations he recites place, the or the and the mantras according worship performing thousand the with and so on by means of protection nature, hundred 74a it, painting he should his the master wise one 71 should the In the of RITES FOR Indra addressed sorrows the power hell of times. eight are born the of in it consecrate the of They are their to it in gthe place Calling he should divinity, other from the the Gait times or even thousand from the 7ntil 75b the ten order, non-receeding for the and from their the to access 15 sins, proclamation and gain stage benefit Out of yogin should consecrate their of (of heart from their the it of by means of the great he shou? d(75a, the the 20 fear effigy) to people, he should divinity, chosen them equal and conceiving other of compassion beings deceased) and writing up to one hundred a rite times? million name, to the hell. spell of divinity, recite 2They auspicious are he 25 times. In times? million the born of thousand in the accordance actual with the fire, thousand of homa rite timesý-3, , hey are rite, (75b) using so long gods. ten released he should sesame, 30 one thousand assemblies the are this gods. as explained offer order 'Dy same way they assemblies among the saffron, hells. a sign in in mantras one should of is ten with them as many as one hundred evils great mantra thousand Likewise the recite the do it among the born and are have he should or as many as one hundred noma sacrifice from living times there liberated the name. an image he should name, the Calling state he will Sometime times. acting on the a house; name (of the an animal Calling correct freed quickly 10 sins one hundred are those the sins of a great to pacify sinner, they are certainly freed from action freed blessed gain in the in from great who commit they being beings (74b) 9 the perform in and are sins maq4ala vases purified, in liberate Or writing a caitya. the the with or their Producing own or 5 on eliminating freeing in beings Drawing delight mudräs. their rest ' effigy order who co-Mit living established and the in and the others. one embark no difficulty gods and always Next place should abode how should those great destinies. it perform ' being sins who takes in to Grahas, and the pacifying beings is Listen! evil three mantras there Those etc. saffron with states? due course. The mantrin draws such their pure in _lilightenment for '0 Lord, them as before Doctrine. Buddha's living all able Naketras, Yak as, rite living hell. of all hell of the and such places With sorrows the those 10 Indra, power the of and other consecrate one should of (still) he is perfection, order, Lord: etc. hell the in and are gaining rites, the said: of sorrow benefit the , DPA]) hell of The Lord the not all servants DI {_ Rl1T 74b 75a his for Acting many kalpas18 By mere verbal like the himself. throughout case rites. perform it and enjoy he abides beings, all it take white offer mustard 35 72 together and grains born in the thus these: upwards, continual, divinity himself 76a accordance In the their the centre banners summons the the honey case of they have it and honours it the he fixes mantra, with Next he applies 5 eyes, on the feet, ankles, private he should crown place cover it mantrin should mer of offerings flames and who resembles of it with the the of butter etc., scented sacrificial the mantra, it head and on the it at the heart, on the on the on a mat in a cloth Agri white the blessed centre with body whose moon, tranquil with rice and times, 25 pure and ornaments, Having written By shoulders, 30 and the mouth. forehead, between the the order to of the mantras. blazes with throat shoulders, places271n it (76b) the the of a cloth with of head, 20 he should many hundred crown the present mixed lots washes and so forth. flowers this mantras. covers perfume, this in yoga, and milk water, their with quality, worshipped divine wood blessed mantra-syllables and summoning offerings. bbymeans having short, 15 with he should mantras, In it adorn one who knows the the divinities, the correctly sacrifice of filled excellent of symbols) mantras. and other parts, He should homa and knowing for and drink umbrellas Families and vessels vases things. he pronounces auspicious the ears, food together, of the 10 with Guardians the Bodhisattvas, it in consecrated garlands .. it to the the the the and the he consecrates Sarvavit Five (their gods, consecrated with out in cubits the number, drawn four a hearth of strands, and suger, a corpse, dig similar mixed has been which smears arrange and mudräs saffron camphor, roasted the and that destroyed, hell the consecration2 barley, rebirths, from freed have been surrounded perform mudräs sesame, and firewood in silk of the hearth the means of shining rim place and other sesame and mustard water, face his see the fire ?4 white he will or rising the of Having performed the flame a pure right, with and those sixteen assembly with offerings In as signs draw a circle order He should excellent place such hearth the of they correct victory, of homa hearth. in are moon with he should He should flowers made of and having they have been sins rite, the or ornaments. the Whenever lightning, know that he should restý5 and other rite the in eight offerings, a canopy, accordingly. the like the their places, and the garlands 76b draw appropriate world with that with (76a) He should vajras. in signs, In size. like he should certainly centre towards and bright pure They are heaven. in been born i), the in moving steady states, unhappy other flame a these On seeing he sees gods, a white either gods and show a sign of assemblies as highest born goat's with firewood. and scented milk hips, nose, eliminate hearth, Kindling with and limitless, knees, evil Then the the thousands Consuof he should 35 73 thoughtful Then the Summoning the things. 77a the performs and Having King the of Then having He should holding perfect Buddha. hundred thousand envisage a lotus deceased), adorned with By applying his times know that He should all together gather the of bones blessing it it mantra one hundred Having the perform light or twice, and eight times by applying flowers hundred should from freed a god. the the benevolence with If it still recitations a series the of for that their of conch because sacrifice. and particles the of cow, 1-ixing or a Gait or or a. he should blazes light shines or magical events flute, drum, shell, 20 as many as caitya smelt number one who knows 25 taken the all the times without hesi35 method the and makes proceed with the (of the deceased) name He performs born them of he should certainly 30 rite sees on a form rites sins worship Then he certainly has of thousand he should appears, life-series he makes an effigy. is great one hundred (78a) he should perform 32 and compassion One the of the Finally signs, He writes homa are 15 mantra. Then the sounds one night. and meditation. or one reciting ashes times, themselves attention. come about, as the rite an image reveal signs does not Gait a appears, and the mudräs, and incense pursue the recitations s, tim a sign and until and he knows sins times. heavenly with of heard. are recitations On perceiving tation, offers reciting perform thousand and others see the thousand tas, Tat_ mantras scent sins sacrifice products five or he should deceased), or eight or four diadem the purification the down and the shower he does not the gods instruments and other If the of smiles five make either thrice, two hundred image groups place) vin71 (of the or the with on the a sign with a lump and the he should once, different take times and clay, recitations accordance water feet Trailokya-l0 has been destroyed. sins He makes into it consecrated one hundred with scent camphor, with thousand in ashes of homa timesPOnce of him worship form the the offer million flow uninterrupted lotus and wearing he should spell his the offerings. the with ornaments vajra-gathering30 of this (77b) together with scented the pressing or as many as ten the the of 5 Victo- for he should i), presentation and a noose, the offering draw Vajrapahaving or etc, them for to times a burnt A One raced t,"Jhite a threefold or with either vi a a, (of the he should 78a summoned the offerings arranged and eight arrange, 28 times twenty-one Mantra implements the with and having them one hundred Then he should the (77a) offerings sacrificial others. Purifying , explained. and other effigy he arranges tas Tather as already distribute Ones and the rious 77b the the of worship he should burning, group prepared place one should him the before in the heaven. consecration of and 74 the Calling name and reciting things, other mid soil mustard, white the into is the in of merit and Wisdom has been said plation It and Means there this world, despise nities, the Then Sakra their 'Good'. Having on acting these rites) their fruits33% ha the and in those and the benefit other with know the 15 to divi- regard rest. lotuses, (the worshipped of path compassionate with open like wide they who are 10 Wisdom the do not views the (Tathägata's) were ta). Tates (accomplished people accordingly word and obtained ANA-MAUDALA34 BELONGING TO THE DUR ATIPARISODF. . is the in drawn gesture second his in va ra of white first giving. in He is quarter. north-eastern on an elephant, seated a three-tipped he makes the the 5 one 21 A SET OF DIVINITIES a snake, eyes the produce away from things, nihilistic rejoiced for kill mudras their gods, in accordance Ný1aka1 do harmful mantras, desti- virtues, of absence who turn views, parents, case of who do not sinners great and who hold and other saying rejoicing Sakra embarking the Teaching, SaAgha, Dharma, Buddha, for the in that Victors evil excellent of seeds from (78b) it. about nihilistic on Elightenment, and intent 79a flowing the by motivated and who was ContemVigour, Forebearance, Morality, Giving, Blessed love do not sins, of by the the of Buddhahood, no doubt is who hold Enlightenment, nature there evil the in destinies who acquired no liberation is of merit, roots of ashes, a river freed are sinners worst of elimination who was endowed with the fruits impulses of of the Perfections the into he throws which the even completed, to mention not possessed 78b mantras, ocean33 When this nies; the the he consecrates four and having colour the hand and with right (79a) In his first left invested with He holds arms35 hand right second hand he holds 25 a trident one a sword. 0M BLUE-NECKED ONE, LORD OF BEASTS FOND OF UMX Sv i As for his right and the right is hands his of as if seated finger he holds with a vajra bend hand is , colour in In his left the the gesture and has ones the with the slightly This black and a mace. left his thumb and making the a vaira. He is aru4a. of he should fingers, representing on a fist the sign 30 of forefinger of four Pa upati. arms. he holds In a conch and a wheel. shell as those of golden in colour. The vehicle and implements are the same ViFnu. Vajraghanjä the 39 is Vajrahemä In rest finger ring Vin his the with a vajra the'little pressing one; he clenches gesture, right and a vajra-bell. is hands mounted he holds a vajra He is red in colour and has six arms. If& 6akti, and in the left a and ones a cock on a peacock. 75 VairakaumärT 79b Maunavajra Brahmä) faces. He holds has four his in and a pitcher He holds right Vajramugli is V_ariräm tä He holds the right Vajramekhalä is 8 left wrathful. the on a tortoise the a man which the Vajrapiiigala lord of hosts, in the is in left the in one. He is red grs he in holding colour, the with left hand. 22 Wrathful. He is on an elephant. mounted hand and handling right blue is Wrathful. on a raZ mounted (80a) and hand and a club right is 15 Wrathful. hand and devouring like disc white in a plough the one. is like Vajra§aunft, for except holding a khajväf ga in the hand. left Vajramäla, the and holds colour left in a vag is the like holding Vajrasenä hand and a garland right green made of yellowish one. holding parrot. on a He is except right hand and a makara-banner is like the Vajravaäin, lord in of in a vajra is mounted like Vijayavajra. the TTessenger colour, except hosts, the holding fiakti"in a for Vajramäla, is Vajramusala left the He is on a cuckoo. mounted (80b) Vijayavajra, He is in is in flowers in 30 Varava6c! colour, hosts, of a vajra Vajrava6in 80b lord one. Vajrasanä the the mounted 'drathful hand, and a solar right 10 colour is white in on a ü-Dose and colour. . and a moon in the left a lotus one. Vajradan4a a vajra Vaira vinayä the like the holding colour, is in the in red mounted Vajraprabha is Vaj=da; colour. (lokottara- va ra He is on a chariot. in the hand, Wrathful the in a vajra in yellowish one. is right a vajra Vairapingala left Va jrakai}J-2lin like Dattjavajrägri mounted a lotus with the the in He holds colour. and is elephant hand and a transcendent left is Wrathful da the Vairada; 80a in the is Vajrakänti the Wrathful like is a vajra 5 on a white together Vajraprabha a club Vajräyudha. the a lotus with hands, right and colour Brahms. like a vaira together his in and a rosary in golden one. Valrakuirdalin and holds He is on a goose. ones. vaji46in the in yaira) mounted mounted a crossed (79b) hä. ia a vajra left is Vajräyudha Va'ra. is like is Vajrafiänti in like is right is is for mounted hand and in being left a sword mounted on a celestial a vajra in right hand. holding colour, colour. He is in left one. in red on a frog. the in yellowish the the the left chariot white in 35 one. made of hand and a pestle flowers. in 76 Varadüti 81a the like is the Vajränila holding with the is Messenger is mounted a vajra in the Servant the the in a vajra the for 10 left holding one. a He is blue in colour right hand and a hook She is blue in the the an of a trident holding atanä in the in a vaira left marked I3himä in scabbard ýri is in 15 and (82b) mounted holding a vajra is in colour, the the left is left in the the the in in blue He is white in colour the in one. and hands, 25 right colour, in colour, white hand in 30 colour, and a makara one. holding a vajra in the right hand and a sword colour, holding a vajra in the right hand and in the right hand one. white43in one. hand and a snake-loose She is right left in one. right the a snake-thread. left on a makara. in 20 black one. yellowish left in on a makara. is other She is white with She is on a rat. a vajra the the mounted He is invested He is the holding colour, corpse. and a hatchet a vajra mounted in in one. on a rat. mounted holding Servant left blue hand and a kha vanes right hand and a broom right in green Ile is the colour hand and a sword right on a resuscitated ones. is a vajra ; ara^vati in left in rod He holds the hoods, snake is in is Servant the Výrarkarä with Servant snake hoods, one, (83a) eight eight the Servant the the i gavajra having in elephant. and a club Vajra riding a vajra Vajravinäyaka has a face is Servant the in a buffalo. riding hand and Yama's the on a man. a vajra is Servant holding colour, mounted She holds right Vajrakäll a vinä He is corpse. except Lega snake. on a mounted is Servant a boar. the in a va'ra a lotus is He holds a boar. of Vajrakäla the ones. hand and a club41in Vajrabhairava a vajra hand. Vajramukhi in left on a resuscitated right like is holding the in colour, one. has a head of 42 left one. 83a Messenger one. in red blaze, and a pitcher a club colour, left the He is a three-pronged in the the and has a head having on a goat. Vajränala. the VajrFLku6a left mounted like holding left the hands, right in in 5 Messenger. upwards Vajravikatä in (81a) in blue He is streamer the Va ränila rising colour, in like a flame Vajrabhairava in hand and a silk right is Vaj rajvälä 82b a khajv holding on a deer. mounted Messengei° in and a shield the except the Varänala radiant the is Vegavajrii is Messenger in a vajra noose for hand. left blue Vajramusala colour, holding a va'ra and 35 77 Dare and a wheel is mounted in the one. the this of left beyond world ones. MätS), Mother-Goddesses to be known as being is and the world a vajra the shell44in hand by the right holding colour, and a conch Vanua, with in green a spear in ending divinities the All held in and others, She is hands, right The va ra which by Rudra on a lion. a three-tipped 5 to be drawn are Vii rocana. facing RITES IN THE MA;TQLA Preliminary ceremony 8lb and taking time the Then at and the mandala four the that has been the Taking he should energetically his a garland on his it deficiencies the head the way wise one in any residues, so he succeeds, and bell a'ra for tie Lord 10 the of whole the to he should eliminate the ma01ala. while es sounding enter gaze on the atone and gesture LJI1 syllabl He offers garland, to order four the He should and in explained, (81b), defects. remaining HU1; I syllables. manipulate should remove Vaira-Tirintiri He fixes shell. conch a vajra-dance. and performs reciting to order the he recites Vajravairocana, vajra-bell in flowers made of blue a garland Circumambulating the he binds twilight, of committing 15 no fault. Then the four the open in stands va'ra-teacher by applying vajra-gates the centre his mind he should and concentrating 0;! VAJZA and saying: 20 OPIN, LEAD INTO THE PLEDGE HUJ1I. for The gesture 82a in fingers This an upright best the is this the opening together holding this: he should position, way of is action the them in separate two vajra-fore- a fierce manner. (82a) gates. -Consecration Having dians the of a high completed neck, the rites gates), he makes a vase rounded lip, a large filled with water, scented fruit bearing branches, protected ritually, smeared enveloped with well with va ra, mantra the times a garland, from all kinds fastened with seven body, oval or from black at the the and marked neck herbs with base, a sacred with the another four outside vase gesture, and finally on the on the with 1itJI1 syllables. and in blessed the ire places front one hundred of the blessed it before entrance and eight times one hundred the Gate with together Lord (east), the 30 cloth, everywhere 26 containing and grain top guar- having clay, and blessed Tirintiri wrathful (three other jewels jewels, scent excellent consecrated not of about and the Afku6a thousand times one hundred and eight imgýl%7 o]f JIIA ;ýIA2Eß : ItT1, xhe lossom and a vajra Oi;T Vý! nchb sprinkled on the place by means of outside, the great the with held with and eight VaJrahuqkLlra. he should four IIU'1 35 78 83b He should syllables. (from this consecrate (83b) and his the with pupils water vase). the Binding of kinds coral of kinds pupils to conch herbs shell vhrl, 5 rikarnä, lentils, sesame, namely it, and all and pearl, such as siphi, grain, of binding or even not mag42 a) and gold, medicinal five the also and sahadevä, (the entering verbally all gems, for gesture designate he should kinds himself rice, corn, and wheat. etc. He blesses with (the dians his he gets Next blue the of Gates, '.ýhhe teacher (with flowers and an upper the wearing the gesture Having the garland the the diadem, Having vow, of he performs the Announcing 84b his as the the himself the Al. self-confidence. is the Lharma, OM I RNTE3 these with his round words: he throws head he removes before the he receives Lord of the garland, the 0 VAJHA ABIDE etc. saying consecration his the master, and the Five Buddha and the vajra, - 20 ends with the Vairocana's the the He says: divinities He says: 'I He should accomplished the at he utters rest, am the 'I in by means of Vainrocana, his with saying: the vajra. 'I Saying: Vajrävega. mantra and he assumes him himself He binds vajradhgtu'. gate reciting He imagines vaira. up to am Vajraghantä' conceive Once more an appropriate ä of succession) northern 25 Irma'. the of the and with AV. lie should introduce (in the ma cula). place self-confidence (himself). all syllable precept Vajra- items other pronouncement. of the syllable (84b) the ma Vajra he binds the the Perfection, and the Dove-play prophetic, and the the Pledge, he receives stanza name, at the Flowers, with am the as Vajraghantä syllable 'Anus it 'I he assumes to be Vairocana (of mahäanzdrä the fivefold Tathä, -,atavajra Vaira', the self-consecration which mantra consecration, glorification saying: recitation blue of self-introduction, mandala, &-. d bowing Truth, the With he performs the entering self-worship HW the syllable 10 consecrations! received worship. into the 6va'ra, cloth, sacred nine all name, for water Tathägatas it binding I'hen accordingly the presence the a garland and says: and made his va ra-water gesture takes rest Tirintiri all a garment mantra of) the Guarwith (the mantra of) V2Ara-armour. with wrathful a, 15 mandala. and looks He releases his the into face-cloth in the sipped the Va ra of) obeisances (the and the blessing THE VAJ A-PLEDGE. He enters, (84a) 0 Lordq I etc. 84a garment head-dress of) mantra a face-cloth Sattvo FTga, of) mantra the four the vows of preliminary (reciting by garments the take am the wrathful 'I the am vajra the He introduces which this 30 ends state in of Va räveda', 35 79 bound Having together brings and once more HUM VAT; HOT. He should repeat ' pledge the, Mshimadrt 85a times and eight four the of mantras 4orship on the accordance sa ttvas diadem Next heart with the drawing. the Five place times with and eight bowls, filled there the mantras canopy banners 10 their Glorious the jewels, of the thousand of pairs others sacred others48He or 20 manJiala as described blessed garments, with cloth. outer marks seals, and the va ra-jewel the Outside appropriate Vairocana tzeodhi- and the and the garland endowed with and their the with worship. mahamudräs Vairocana, VajrahuTkkgra vajra, karmamudr-as. make the Va ra-Families outer 15 one hundred also ten places 25 thousand, one hundred, or one each, or one in common, also many kinds (91b) to: the four corners, streamers attached umbrellas, variegated and flags. victory He should Va rahurzkära. consecrated one hundred or with of Bodhisattvas recite the namely Then having made of vases va'ra of gestures, and performs the stamped one thousand, coerce JAH HU!I VAIrI HOIJ, Then he should he should the Buddhas, an oblation duly or the with says vajra consecrate with before, he should samayamudräs reci- divinities Gods and the other (91a) heart a five-tipped vajra his in a five-tipped Good Age and the he presents he should 91b his of leads due order in 5 their Great A. he makes their he should consecration, through offerings concluding the of Producing syllable the of tongues mantras. the in Conceiving one hundred ediately gate-guardians, he should mantras promptly mandala appropriate the their Reciting the of by means of in the divinities, other . divinities) He presents By means of and the Then he places their them. is it and other THE PLEDG , YOU AND I ARE THE PLEDGE. 47 coerced. and thus they are all YOU ARE 91a VajraAkuga he pronounces Next repeating He summons (the (85a) most. HUZI syllables. Good Age. the times. JA J O;I VAJ RAUNI0I1 saying: Vaj rakrodha, by means of Vairocana Glorious Buddhas fingers his snaps v_:jra-teacher twenty-one it them and subdues binds them in, ting at the all of the gates appropriate the Sattva-Vajräfikuga, He blesses present them to them with all the the 07 syllable divinities saying: and Glorious VAJRA-_DIST- 30 RIBUTIO'_?. the Applying branches or four Likewise applying the he makes and smell and all gesture applying Vajränala of of he takes Vajränala }ItJ:1, and makes the a pleasant Likewise of branches49 OP?VAJRA_FLO'.,rR having gesture perfumes kinds of gesture he takes flower-bearing one hundred flowers and blesses them saying: flower. of all and blesses kinds them of saying: scent and fragrance OM VAJRA-SC1'j?T HUTS, scent. Vajränala he takes camphor, fragrant 35 aloe and olibanum 80 sandal with mixed HUI;, and he makes the INCedS Likewise thousand ten or dishes ten or cotton with In the one hundred he has first same manner he blesses thousand or ten perform the thousand there ten lhether musical are ; ftAr is thousand hundred or what) one or 92b and fingers. fists oxen, elephants, also fold of Vajra-Läsyä fists The wrathful 93a the out ching Having the in beings. f of most flowers OI `ýi the 'Please over food. of which 11 He should ON thousand ten the OM the with and so forth. flowers of designed delightful with z1 ja models bells. with horses, of He offers 0T4 BY ADHERENCE 1[0 VAJ?'ASATiTVA He says: 21 and and embellished pearls well vi: ä, kinds diadem a garland of of e number different ear-rings, wearing vajra- drum, 2ataha 15 HUH syllable 25 a dance performed the applying he should worship the whole fists, and with the eight- wrathful the vajra-fists and stret- 30 once more with the Vajra Family, he should bestow every karmamudräs sixteen achievement as explained beseech the for benefit the Wrathful entire of all living 35 Then he should the kinds number, forefingers. mandala saying: in a drum, and the others. formed (93a) by making are worshipped Family Having karmamudra-s the worship oblation-offerings, VAJRA-JEWEL BE EFFECTIVE AS VAJRAXARNA BY TIE CJTs1TI'i?GS OF THIS ABSOLUT2 Dla,, DIA. manc.ala syllable and arch ways and chariots, 1-LAYTHIS 3UPPJ}Ii with the and strings a lar; give mjda4 decorated pennant OII VAJRP-DISTRIBUTION. them saying: ten or one applies acting, necklaces with He should moons. the one thousand, drum, with dancing, music, adorned chowries, half Pronouncing THE SOURCE OF ALL THE DII:IMIS available, blesses he makes a silk Likewise lamp. items). Vajränala instruments, bheri gong, He also namely worship, with drum, drum. timila drum, of kettle tabor, flute, and he blesses number, of 5 the instruments concerned, of musical using gestures (92b) The ten kinds are the following: of instruments the with little lamps, of gesture and various rite, auspicious one hundred one in or one hundred or available, R1 UIDJUETTAL 1,110111-ORIGINATION. Ti ACCOU2NT O by means of OI;i TIIS SYLLABLE A IS them saying: together ten or HUM, and he makes the (all these he should offer OM VAJßA-DISTRIBUTION, present one thousand thousand5ccensors kinds all 0I1 VAJRA-LIGHT them saying: 0ý VLJRA(3. L. ) or whatever or one hundred, lit, wicks one hundred or one hundred thousand them saying: incense. of he takes one thousand or lamps thousand gesture Vajrränala applying and blesses things wood and other aid effective and food present together consisting SYLLI' ;L:; I, the etc. of Starting external with parched peas and other with He places oblation. the rice, sesame, things eastern in water, blessed quarter the mandala eatables, by pronouncing: he should make 81 a threefold offering flowers, the construct smnon Having the the offer first he should that and he should divinities the presented he should items, the of mantras and .s this Then he should to regard scent, and having offering worshipped 5 Then he should oblation. leave. them to -Iludr With end he presents the and at and oblation. pledges. and other scent request Guardians the3*are the of Ten Directions following the mudräs and mantras. lposture. (93b) ä1! the left h the he in with the Facing east stands , hand on the hip he should the right the va ra. Placing he should display For 93o maiidalas. them the to indicate with lamps incense, beginning the and at the he releases Sakra. Next of the in He stands is their hook the posture gesture of the a circle. south-eastern From the From that of OE his of out the This samayamudra he joins the joint of the forefinger gesture the is the in outside hold From that facing the the centre it. southern the of finger the of centre pointed the forming middle finger, of summoning gesture thumb to the side nails of the thumbs the hand. them at he points the heart. 54the mantra: ILAIL TO YAHA them inside53 turn ring hands and making vajra-bond the his puts quarter Then he should dismissal. His 'ý, forefinger This is 20 the of the 25 and gesture S'."L3S RE0, mantras Yana. moning sur ?n the same way making he should dismissall5 of 0 AGNI COM, COPm, 0 REDDISH ON BLAZE ATID DUPu? 90 ON ACCOJIIT OF T'rf FLAMES, 0 DIVERSELY-EYED O: E SV7117. a point saaa a- (94a) dismissal. thumbs summon 10 Agni. together them at the right of This hand. is the IN THE VAJIII-'vUART tI he protrudes summoning displaying The yogin the the gesture forefingers His 94a is and stretches he bends third on the middle of gesture This forefinger, the the t quarte it place thumb in the holding is SALUTATICK 0 VAJitAP mantra: He should This summoning. PT0:., ý T PROTECT SVä}I. ? acing forefinger. the made with pratyäl11ha in which was engaged (vi sari ana). This hand forefinger. the by bending, mudra rite fingers into This is the ring finger. before the ring This is a point him, fingers the on the is the 30 into gesture of outside samayamudrä. This placing 35 gesture of 82 the Facing a fist Making bent. south-western forefinger. left the (94b) prom that is This Nairfti left together fist at heart of He stretches the forefinger left the hand on the hip hip the making sword gesture. gesture of This summoning. is . spaced SPIRITS facing ACT ACT SVäBA. the forefinger western of summon by bending He quarter. the right the left hand. 10 Holding forefinger. left the forefinger forefinger gesture of the with fist which Varuna56 of samayamudrä the of joined 15 This summoning. is the dismissal. of 0 TI mantras facing hand left 570 LD ONE, r -7 the north-western he bends the and placing he should a ring, hip and the Varuria. summoning is like the ALL TH he should This it spaced. suasmoning Nairfji. of hand on the thumb and the of noose. of gesture from evenly gesture the the Then he places the DIVE2SELY-r quarter. before is This the thumb as before. thumb from the -D ONE sv7uT . Pointing the middle (95a) on forefinger it stretch thumb? the He stretches of feet the the gesture He stands the forefinger the Eis hold evenly 6 hold the left the he should gesture 95a the his with From that is the 0 YOU WHO TERRIFY join the is This he places out mantras He stands the is finger middle he should a sword This the feet of dismissal. the gesture should55 holds his with s samayannicirä. He stretches His hand1he right them as with Positioning bending 94b the with he stands quarter him. of is gesture of third the Placing gesture This the joint forming hand right 20 on V-ayt. summoning V-au's finger samayamudrä. This summoning. is the gesture dismissal. 25 The mantra: facing He stands makes the the bend ring inner fingers like it This His the This gesture gesture mantras is out the of them. is gesture the he should This a point behind. turn Kubera's middle with the summoning down the middle before little the Protruding of hands himI he fingers middle and holds finger, he should Kubera. fingers 30 linked as the samayamudra60 fingers dismissal. OM HAIL the Placing quarter. He forms separately va ra-bond. is northern vaira-bond. He stretches 95b the a va ra. From that inner OBI BLOWING IN SPACE SV_? i TO KUBGRA. from the gesture (95b) of summoning. 83 facing He stands the He makes the an tali. ring the forefingers like the I 6zna' s is behind hold the the the fingers and 61He f_. n; ars. places the with middle nails. forefingers like fingers. middle protruding finger little the is This Rending as before. a vajra 5 of gesture This from the gesture of This summoning. is dismissal. of gesture forefingers the 10 0ý1 JUZ JUM LVA The mantra in He stands 96a to palms he forms hands samayamudrä. He stretches the joined corresponding he should From that are a vajra them he should join 29"ana summoning the his Joining quarter. in vajra-bond The thumbs fingers. the north-eastern the dha posture. pratyä1! (to the SVAJIA. the bending upwards and looks (96a) summoning of Brahmä and others. From that he places gesture He holds zenith) hands forefingers. forefingers the his as before. in an afijali This is the gesture This is the saznaya-15 mudrä. lie of gesture Their tips looking the forefingers the gesture of with the fingers. IIe makes corresponding of he summons P thivi downwards (to the nadir) thumbs the is the gesture forefingers the He stretches of is This summoning. OII BRAHM ABOVE SVI; -IA. OM SUN TIIE LORD OF TH n PLAIiiETS SV7JiI. ., 0I1 MOON TiIE L0 OF TII LUNAR HAI SIO?3S SV I11i. . his feet evenly his hands, he unites spaced. Joining mantras: This forefinger. 63He the places gesture from the dismissal. He stands the the stretches of summoning as before. forefingers from the and the Ptthivi is This gesture like of firmly circles others and others. the 20 and by bending 62 samayamudrä. This summoning. is the dismissal. The mantrass OTTP-aTiHIVT BELOW! SV ffi. 0r'1ASURASSV 7i. (96b) OMNAGASMill. them the Then he offers 96b me together 'Keep success of the with together free my pupils Having rite'. libation said 30 from this harmful he should their with mantras. influences. ask them to Grant He should suras, the oblation accomplished <<aý"kýas, Supari as and Katap Gandharvas, Yaku`s me the 35 present all He says: leave. Stanzas of praise. Gods, 25 and all with 64 these well N g'as, tanas, forms of Gralhas, recited stanzas: 84 Whatever my knee Bending Making Vith to their sane, Those who dwell the where in in the all on the the sun rises Those who live 97a come for who live The Spirits in their In lakes and ponds In wells, on river slopes happy In vih a, In lanes, Under In and on the large and market are mined, in deserted towns, and hermitages, sures, palaces of kings, places, on highways, or and in 20 forests, great and of bears, 'wild in and dreadful abode Meru's places, on holy isles, cemetery. 25 thus ()aardians AAO"t . rite worshipped the the garlands and scent. (97b) as fruitful. Grahas, he should 30 honour Väy the The mighty NaiEEti and ßhu of mindedly the ones above, spirits, Brahm , Arka F-gas FH. on earth, gods and of gods, 35 and Kubex"a, lord single.. 'Ibn Directions. endowed with the va ra accompanied by the hosts this . xb ll nt oblation. Yea, 4i of lamps, this ensure also ijaving my end offerings incense, with May they and drink eat respectful our Vast numerous made their take, they the the who live presented All in jewels 10 happy, Joyful, 9Th disc, solar 15 enclC, who twell :lay abodes, 5 temples, and elephants' of lions And those or grounds cemeteries Those who've divine water-falls, shelters trees solitary use and in monastic s, squares In lairs of banks cai Those who dwell Meru, and such home where 67 and pools, and in huts In penance 5 ilount of grove and sets herdsmen's places empty servants. benefit, Those who have made their in of world, the mountainous all places66 (97a) and where two rivers meet, rivers In villages, this them all and hosts consorts me, may they Hearing in earth, I beseech 'ali an who live creatures ghostly and Candra, 85 gods and the The mountain in his Rejoicing together their With appropriate May they receive May they smell May they also friends the forces eat ensure this and drink flowers lamps, and ointment. them. as fruitful. rite the presenting THE SYLLABLE A IS 5 incense, offerings, for and armies, and allies'0 them, The mantra 96a Guhyskas, quarter, their with sons, of himself Each one announcing And being hosts assembled inside oblation is and outside (98a) this: SOURCT OF ALL TH,.: DH: iARMAS ON ACCOUNT OF THEIR "r'[tNDA- 10 1 Mr`NTAL NON-ORIGINATION. Homa rite the ablution performed l in the centre flower of Having Placing the mantras of In kyaviiaya. of Vairahunnkära, Glorious the of mantras the Vairocana Then following ' by means of flowers? and others the in places ma-adala used for one hundred Vajravefia. Wrathful hearth homa and again Glorious front belonging with buttert in the divinities accordance clarified cow's with the all he stands is which to the sacrifice and the other inscribed with the rites, gate. he recites Glorious of a burnt offer divinities, 111railo-15 sacrifice the reciting mantra times ending with with he summons Vairocana them into set eastern fourty+iine order, correct the mmaaala timest and eight He should all he should rite a but the of their the mantras 'I, of 20 appropriate of Vairocana and others. OF PUPILS IITITIATI(V Bowing before yrso"teacher, 96'b all Leading are the all them into Ile drink unable they he says: introduce will worthy the ý{Torthy Tath they will There are on entering accordance There with are manjala ','hat vessels. beings my pupils On seeing become freed from living beings he should such and such a name, 25 for the benefit (98b) of is the every who are evil desirous the here their living previously will gain complete it? sine but they are (potenmaqWa of all kinds They hate mentioned whether of 30 ia'rahuri- destiny. who are(potentially)Lords. to for reason this and entering investigate not who commit great etas. and pleasure, to aspire great or unworthy There are some living tiaiiy OF VOWS Tathägatas hermit, great TAKING beings'. living they MD the and the practice fulfilment of of all food, wealth, pledge73and are But even rest. their hopes 35 in wishes. beings, jpotentiall,, Lords, who because of their deli -ht 86 dancing, in of Even on the to committed the of mai4ala leads that path into there And again the achieving afflicted by their release and so on. yýrahu; k raI branches five at feet the great his of me the a Tates Then he dresses and blessed (the mantra with (the of) the the Once again 100a the the teacher's liberation, the power. comprising of returners. 0 great ezoellent major secration, the the benefit of all in instruct grant of the the community teacher, Grant teacher, living of such meat Secret, of ITan-returnere please me the.. rull lead marke. I become a teacher 15 of (99b) them. the becoming himself prostrating joy. great 0 Enlightenment. 21. Grant vow'75 blue7bin colour blessed 25 with He and others. the teacher He and admonition. I be remembered by the and such a name, remain the city great best the consecration teacher, for of the of endowed grant sake of in 31 the the of (1O0a) from arisinG gathering Buddha-body 0 great meditation, vow of and others, .e the share, auspicious beings+. the the to into me a beautiful Ilay taken approval Ify I. for hand bows before vow. grant wonder. his in who has mastered garments, on, me the sages. the and minor great a flower enter Secrets. All ' I will 0 great Buddha-play. family light perfect the however, rnaric1ala ask da face cloth an , Gates, Vajzfikuda obeisances. he requests please and upper of holding pupil '0 master, say: Buddhas, four just leads me the Method any difficulty. without my teacher, that upon Va raak of) this discipl(4 are path lower Guardians Four 'You the in pupil joy, who strive and the to become a teacher, and bestow mantra flower ti,-? t and holding should the a one who has or says you for pledge the their Stages, them into A lay consecrated him to make the get should or a novice should increase They are, Batas. One should in. pupils being the state achievements? his master of essence Bodhisattva of I beseech protector, the the of one worthy a monk, pursuing Tatl obtain lead them from Meditation, the leading learning of all of other are into (potentially)Lords, Morality, mere fact about to as they initiation dissuade 5 ax,rl 10 By the Then he should 99b in so far the order beings, means of Supreme Wisdom of they can be said 1:Ihat by exertions and in living virtuous Enlightenment Buddha's in to order epitomes satisfaction destinies, in the happiness. and highest are pleasure, enter instruction of Families, contented evil destinies, evil all enjoyment satisfaction, for mu_, ý4.al 18 of . is suitable Va rahumkä. ra source tas' cannot and so they etas the highest being the into entry Tathä Lath the their of occasion the all of and pleasure, Fearing gods. of the all of the ma ul of enter hopes (99a) and bestowers delight. of teachings do not all food love-playing, families other of maalas they 99a IYrah äna the comprehend the laughing, singing, with To... the me the con- acting for 35 87 teacher Then the such the and such a name, adhering to the which admits vow of the Next 100b join to fuge in in this teacher pure the Three mudra-. the bell the Buddhas. is It gathering should offer four ship. Receive form. This is the truth of worship vow in as you (101a) the three yogin take nor speak untruth. what You should verting living yogins. Guard as well the concerning rules not beings. in delight Do not the the divinities mudrrIs, the vehicles thoughtful keep one, (The pupil) 101b 'Today you' should not etc., Should fault. You should not commit the different perform kill for the these or häni), beings sexual of acts all sake (the pupil) misforof con- and honour good people rules concerning the body, the and the throe rules concerning the mind. You should Vehicle or and never turn cling OWMak" sayt'0 teacher, act as you order'. living beings in take should the not away from to ni- You should and the implements. (10lb) it'. to 20 three or he says: acts15 recitations living source except ocmtpemy of from abandon unlawful the acts the be any failure not intoxicants, unsuitable keep there 3eceive . performing You should nights. and open pled not 11 you vow should be recited. benefitting änýa. You should tread not The pledge please living is listen not on the thus hold to me. 0 master, Next he recites 'I the 0 let the highest 30 it the highest' raise X82 be merely led The consecration ON` I WILL PrOTIUC} TI1 raise 2$ in symbols, explained. four beings. in but to the words teachership be performed. Otherwise brought as the pledge. and friend- secret You must all nights dharma regarded sin. to as the three its and as you can the should He who does not in firm and equal explained and in vehicle bell 5 Iilightenment of a master days a capital drink not the fearlessness, You should given. speech, be as you say. I will 'establish until etc., Thought rj'ika)81 at vow become vajra, the and three Lesser contempt is You should samsära abandon three in the Family, ra for asks you wish 8--Pake Secret? re- Great teacher, threefold in otherwise avoid V pure of being, great Karma Family, 80actions The four which are it - You should the the your offences been 10 great Padma Family, be gravely has not nor ,, pure can. days will is posseessions, vow79 teaching) for day tunes. the comprehensive (your take the to be disqualifying said every the candidate assembly'. take mind, vajra the worldly Good secret pupil): (100b) of Ratme, Family, the this 'This Enlightenment, of (the the vow in gifts: as well to You should the of Thought 0 great that the is 'This Families: Dharma and Safi&lLa. May your Family. 'Jisdom. In the Bud, explained is in Jewelss the family and esoteric the all address should Buddha pleasing transgress 101a pledgg7 this the are beseech should PJOUGHT OF ALL YOGA. Having, and supreme Thought of Lhlirhtenment, 35 88 the heart on his he places vajra this reciting V_&LRA-SUCCESS AS ])-SIRED. THE PLEDGE H0 ,T him as V rahm kära, Having consecrated 102a Placing and so on. he receives ointment, the from standing vase He makes (the the gesture the of) wrathful Making in v ra-thumb the wrathful Taking a garland made of flowers means of the him in Leading Tathägatas, I will produce You must achievements. other should and on no account of your pledge. of vow is the this you reveal it front in 5 his is recalled. in with 10 summon him by P96a at and coerce gate, of say Family this: 'Follow means TathgMtas. How much more a man ala do not you see 20 miriý n tiri, very head to himself thät 'This is to upwards the vajra split'. vow recited va ra-pupil Vajrasattva split your the of it gesturing say: cause will 15 the of all (102b) of that be broken'. to his will be led western Vajra the all quintessence it apply by means of Vejra-Knowled8vjy Wrathful 'Today this: method, the with it give he should he should anyone, the taken Tirintir-i the at head he should with He should samayamudrg. essence If water water he gets should him in pupil's you tell If the good and then he should gate of speak pledge mikes vYa ra fn; t the He blesses the not the with gate. perfection your himself The teacher and placing the E eastern the you Wrathful hola hrough for obtain lead northern follo palms (The teacher) gate, once more by the you have you will the at that throughtrNow eastern his thumbs, 1PLEDGE. him by means of Va rrve6a him by means of knowledge bind gate, southern the at his with OI;1 I ETTER TIE VA Vajr Aktida himself Tirintiri vajra-bond firm him with flowers scent, VATI. PJ T[ Vr^, '71T;?, HUI; I VA? 'ýu", ýG;. --PIS the and by the spell: 0I him with face (102a) his and consecrates He says: mind, this 102b gift outside. to make it. pupil best the he honours on him and anointing a garland 0 DIM NE ONE YOU AFL; spells once drink. and with The quint- has entered heart. your and he will moment, 25 depart'. o VAJf?A-+4AT2. he should (103a) ; hen you. Next 103a for despise of throat that opens from his the and blazing that the do something, anguish imagine in his with he opens syllable has entered he should light, he says: his I am Va rap do it. his `:east. not 30 ürnä), eyebrows vajra resting and a crossed 4ZR: 1-Mid f. `P: his You mast A surrounded syllable a lotus, pupil's j hell'. a five-tipped a jewel, own and his pupil's the between imagine A and applying the into own heart T JI today you must and falling heart, Ixjupil's head, from 'Beginning pupils in due succession gates, own heart va'ra dying and on the In respectively. the you to ra.. rays. disc on a lunar of I order he should that by a garland at the me or you risk After the address With heart. it imagine 35 gesture Fe brings mind/ he sets 1e should the vajra in forth the his centre whole 89 being body the 103b pervaded tas Tath u Then the is ssvy= 'This the it Ile should your Binding as follows: mea. upon Wrathful Tiriintirr% May it all should(103b) to cause descend upon you today. ' VJJRA-PF IETIWVION Abi - he says times. It certainly descends. one hundred etc., fist a wrathful the quickly words)- `s1Let descend known as Vajrasattva. pledge-vajra, knowledge . twenty, thirty, times, (these Vajrasattva binding vaAra-teacher 'Pronounce say: me and let consecrate yaý r supreme ten by it. he should the unfold gesture Sattvavairl of 5 and OBI SUJ SITMBHANI HUM. 0M RECEIV-!, R',CEIV@, HtJIi. 0I RFCtaiIVE T6U AND BESTOW, RECEIVE AND BESTOW HtNI. 0Pj LE-AD IN HOLT, 0 LORD VAJ1 7JA PIA. T. recite 104a it ten times, twenty times, Ail Abi Ali AV - he should recite thirty etc., one He should imagine him as being pervaded hundred times. by the Lord as Va ra(104x) in the ma Ala blazing bxutk1ra of the Va ra-Wind with red light. descerr the If by the panied take place, Pressing with his him as being he imagines in Huizkk ra bell. does not to order being uplifted as and , HLUq2ELM with Vfkhvaa in the and A.V. He should fold ways: If 104b free he should in his as being burnt from homa hearth. the about, the descent of the It by the (the his sins gesture certainly of) Taking great firewood it with va ras 15 and appropriate ITJM TI ; HRIV one hundred- number of 20 sins, Concen- gesture. He should blazing and he should e palm the of 25 the thumb and imagine coming his out sins 30 Vajrlvvela, takes place, does not occur, Wrathful Zara-M- their in sesame in with of the pupil), sesame. He recites (I04b) At the same time sacrifice. multitude the with MM.. syllable in freeing sweet with accom- Glorious recite the of syllables the of sacrifice a homa perform body seed THAT BUTTS ALL SIf1S. it Then once more binding bring a homy representation inside their He should (of ma1ala other because a fire rays him above (Buddhas) him. one Vajra-Wind by means of sins by performing sins of samayamudrä right mass of into by the place kindle HAIL TO THE VAJRA forefinger, the forms pervade his he should thoughts imagining hand, them to him from he makes a symbolic left the take pervasion his 0f sayings and the does not the burrs all east AJ. his trating cause below on the by the entry from Or ZUM-PENETRATION he should then him with impregnating foot above Vairocana's ana's effect huiika quarters, left from pressed he makes the then 10 in the same way, he should However, one upon whom the should not be consecrated. He upon whom the descen occurs obtains immediately the five intuitive 35 k iowledge Knowing the desceri to have taken and the rest. place/ he should recite S7He this verses Oft BY AI R IC TO VAJRASA, T'WA etc. should unfold the gesture $by de of Sattyavajr applying the wrathful fist. R 90 If atý. 105a as it the descer !then the takes teacher make the 9 tions: Then imagining he tells he should fall. get he should Next 0 VAJRASATTVA fist make the on his tongue pupil) to wrathful gesture as a wrathful gesture. gesture he should they So long that says 0 VAJRA for on his your into a garland success garland today opens HAIL Vý?JRA LOOK. beginning #2l_a bind throw is HOTT. There himself disposi- SPEAK. Then it the remove He opens MNIala happens 01t ACC 'm IT saying: show him the He should great him where head eyes. the faoe"cover saying: every the eye, divinities of the (105b) VajraAkuga disc performed' oblation sounding banners of victory, front flags and other he should L .sä flowers worship with and the others. bows before The pupil He should gift. an excellent by applying the the and having others, great 15 which inside gate supreme outer gesture bestow upon 20 teacher receive scent and so on, instruments, praised with vajr, master items, stanzas the and with an vajrZjßi umbrellas, benedi- of and then and name. with a solemn the consecrations he offers and with the consecration water and other the pupil musical Having and so on. thus first the perform 9l diadem, sacred cloth, of maddrä tions the flowers,, he should ction eastern 10 him. with shell the and the consecrate worship a conch of consecrated Sattva v_ajra he should dra, the in having it, Va'ralýära, Glorious Having of a lunar or outside maqjL2L him with drawn Having of he should make their and ending with Vairocana. 0 0 VAJJRA ABIDE etc;, Then saying: he should release the gesture the pupil's heart. penetrates tt Vajra- of then Vajrahgsa, of and thus OF GREAT POWTIR. Then he should Vajrasattva Va ra-eye'. 105b (the RECEV. E 0 VAJRA sayings 'o his Vajradharma Wrathful a vajra make the everything. Next to he should the of gesture form should (105a) comes about he should place, the consecra- Once again eightfold 25 worship ali and offers flowers and other with objects. 30 As for the master consecration 106a (106a), he applies in the same manner the gesture of Glorious Vajrahuzpltraa to different Places as indicated, fixing Glorious body Va rahgVccära and the rest by means of the samayamudräs. on'his Once again he makes a vase of victory blessed one hundred and eight times or times one thousand the with following 0 ?J VAAJJA."MAS'i' q7 recitations CHATS YOU, I3 MI FOR ND, JAI' HUM VMJ iitp + .: Then he should recite this: O?i VAS of victory recite will the with as follows: burn you. if he should va'ra-fist, ' This is you keep your the water pledge, of CQraSE-- 35 ?A'. CONSECRATE* Taking perform hell, you will the If water the from the consecration you violate obtain water the success, and pledge, the it perfect vase 91 water the to mudrä in manner an unbelieving one hundred form, who do not those Then having 106b he should the whole msz4al a the given and you mock theca should praised with precept in to all and prophetic exortations. He introduces Now the Secret Consecration. bell, people'. having rite, the va ra, nor ordinary with instructions spiritual the reveal the and having names, give to when you are completed and eight belong not his the recitation of its fi. vefoli stanza (106b) by means 5 pupils verses of one who is the 'Act worthy the highest the state the whole as a teacher, consecrated how much easier of the and he says m.:Qý.a.la to him: many terrifying their with the him, being, great The success and the like do not turmoil are eliminated. tection happily. of great in exist exist that nor Grahas and the of Tiara, a moment. Diseases, the others mighty of the the obstacle dreadful 15 perfection - epidemics, famine the of those homa rite. Plagues, and strong Guardians and all he reaches even born. The enemy+.armies, region. Kings, horde by means of in removed. Gods and Nägaae, the Great Grahas, realization are quickly contentment become far rest The Pour Yaks, F;akatras, do not comes about a state and the afflictions they certainly to The gods attain ones calamities, evil and spirits (107a) give pro- 21 world-quarters, endowed with magical protection. give powers impediments, Part u and the 93 the weapons,, obstructing of 10 Buddhahood, to obtain. evil great as any effort difficult not the with Without achievements. are fulfilment and every one. lesser the and meets rit22 lower and Vajraaeatttvaa perfection producers this of and the middle a Bodhvi.sattva of the fulfilment the stages; He who gains makers, the obtains highest, the desired, for being of into accordingly'. ;e always 107a You should the bra-ambrosia. of 25 FINAL PRAI S^S Now the and offered with devout of the all Va ra Best gods, rianyfold hearts Buddhas, Vajra Great 108a Vaira 52 i Great ra. -Lotus Va'ra-, ustre Vajrýhetu. Destroyer Hail Irani, Va res, at umbrellas Invincible of all Victor, the impurities all Great Lustre, Yakga, Primordial Buddha 30 Va, ra, j, Vaira Blaze, Great Self-born Purifier, Buddha of Blaze, Mighty Weapon, (108a) 35 among Greatest, Vajra.. Purifier Vajra-Lotus They praised ignorance. of of the Mighty Great Vehemence, Mighty Inlightenmentt once made an obeisance and so on. Penetration, Great Great jewels, the Holder Va ra others Va re. -Weapon, Va ra. -Arrow Excellent Piercer, . Va ra-Vehemence ja the 13xcellent Va ra-Penetration and the worship with gnii V the Body, All of iä the King, Vajradhara, 'Va ra-Body, lakra, of Illusions, Great Ocean, -l1v'htenment, 92 Great a ra-Wrath Great Vara-Terror an% 1vaj Va the Great Enemies', Performer, Vasa, En j oye r, All of Violence, Black Great Shining Face Hundred with Essence Bodyless, Destroyer Brahms Purifiere of of of and Sorrow, Intense of Fear, of Strong, 10 Ocean of Good Qualities, (107b) Formulas, of many millions One, Instigators of Countenance Blazing Shining Impurities, with Tongues 16 Twisted Thought and Dharma , Free of All Discriminating Ignorance, Purifier of Imperfections of Desire of pure, Buddha--Fora, with Lord's in existence he is 20 and Hatred, he is and non-existence Buddha bestowing Vairasattva, Thought, Buddhahood. Vaira-Bon, all Buddha-marks. the Pure One, the 25 ',thole Essence the of Vajrs always, joy. The assembly Gan arms, many Body and Limbs, dog and rraites(this He who writes teaching) it or truly retains follows it it, he is equal to Va ra or again i .. thus said remembers Lord of Wings Light. Forth, Red Eyed One Awe-Inspiring, ins, . Rays, Equipped with hundreds of weapons Bodies, and totally Buddha-Essence, Flighty thousand All-Good, Adorned with ^, amsntabhadra , the whole universe. He is He pervades the 5 sky, with Radiance and deep ignorance, (108b) and docile Peaceful as the a Sporting hatred desire, Producer Joy-Producer, Va ra-Banners Destroyer Masses and Thousand T!any races He is Pace,, Light Adorned lähal Koh Desire, One Issuing Wrathful Knowledge, One, ame Radiant Vajra-F'l. the va, Vajrasädhu Powerful as vast of Anxieties Destroyer Best Bha , Vajra-conseoration, Great Vajra-Desire hopes Hopes, Vara-Knowledge Great I Vara. -Pleasure Bestower of Power, Mighty Blaze Destroyer of Yuma, Glory, of Hla One, Pleasure, Supreme Essence the Invincible unaccomplishable, Mighty a-Violence Bestower i Y&Ara-Hook Impetuous Great ra-Pleasure Va ra-Glory 108b the Accomplishing well 107b Protector, Wicked of a Great YakVa, Va ray-Demon the Best of Demons, Vajr V Destroyer aajra-Lord Ve tälalas Vararäk Va rave teal a Great Bb! Fury, 30 of gods, Yakaa, , pronounaeaent &M age 1 Ric V! M an acorat and the and the rest of its bestowing others together greatly benefits with men, at the and happiness. rejoiced 93 NOTES TO THE INTRODUCTION The list 1. 5 omits vol in the 2, It be noted should text dative t. See Du ston, in dpsl is but kurend. it referred to has it correctly as T. T., be the See Snellgrove, 8, the has resulted This as transliterated in the at occurs a head of pp 189 & 197. Du stop, (Choy lo ba Chos rje tsa 1111. Roerich, in dppal), 1959. Patna Roerich on page xliii, a Tibetan In his list evidently of monk of works this misses work. tha, `I rn he was 7nanda and that po rdo nie same lharmakirti vol ITHV, 's teacher: o chehislob ma rdo who wrote a commentary rje yul sih ga dpon chen po slob on the Hevajra p 15- I, bz 4 Riten of activities and D. L. Snellgrove, H. Richardson see 'Mucci's po A Cultural History Indo-Tibetica, of Tibet, vol Londan II; 1968, pass. 9. In the sped rbha and the translator aided noted here above Cataloque two other that are are: cho gahi düah Sriih not work is attributed is Hirn chen hbyt ddhistCanon, Tibeten -te by Saito Gratitude The two works this edition of-the Cata1o u gi as it atiparifiodhenar$ja pp 276. -82; Blue Annals, p 351; won, is mentioned ha, pp 284-6, in filar Blue Annals, p 352. in T. T. vol 76, No 3458, p 313-1-4, that Vaýrawe learn dpon then Tantra. 7nsnda, fact in Pos mdzad pa. :e may well pp 113-60 title is Tatra pass. 'Sr%ý slob rye p 106; mentioned colophon sfiifi , or the of genetive. of Sanskrit he gives AnandaAsrbha from came va msn rdo the title Sarvadur instead by George which 'From short a a by Ki r of No 116, the Buddha :tharmasva-min maddhaguhya p 190. the pp 190-99 translated Chos rje ereg title that endings Annals, Blue apl-iy of pilgrim, 7. hereafter 'PripiJaka, translation. See the lahi the passing of occuring ending Bio in dative 3 6. in pºa mcntra with Tibetan 5 Taisho colophon. the the the of geig phyogs the as same the in contents of Foundation, works included Uo 2633, flan published Sendai, related in the to to Vairavarwan+s g; ae bzsii no. by Tahoku Japan, our Pekin 1934, Tantra dition , ' of See A Complete Imperial No 2626. which the disciple are University, it may be listed Taisho Tripi in the ka. bahi äi ba i sb in soli thams cad yo$s au sbyoii las kyi rim na (; 3a,. xvadurg. ti2ari6odh namerahomavidh armakrema) (Mnsnda by nra no arbl a) & translated ravarry2ri and Rin Chen 94 fi baliithabs an soA th ats cad Bb oy bam translated odhanopäýanäma) by skal bzý idi ; No 2634, bz paý lo. of the five For the list (pa4iýcakaau evils (Sarva. bya durg. ties a by Nin gi & jyut dzufi ýýod, afigs ma lfa) see 1svy No 2336- 40. 11. A wry several 12, in references See the Texts. English are Bibliography of the made in under Story Version the of the A,, is heading ha to whom god Viimmalamaq5 ra given in part III,, p 179ff. of 'Other edited Buddhist Tantric 95 NOTES TO CHAPTER I Tib ja in is missing Z. This phrase . Ar____ 901 1 äkya92h B has dPa6l listed are usually (gods), Asuras(demons On the rebirth. ted of that The law classed early is This fundamental places be an evil the () by a red a black the on the miniatures of men of symbolized by the The remaining the between to happy the within destinies deva, asura, nara) three evil destinies wheel there are ndhas a tree -a four immaterial tion and other ( are potter with with flowers. skandhas ,ýtana) 7)feeling vedäna)- the namely faculties(: - an empty 4)rß , house. the in ä)- e. blind and a pots 6)oontact(s half lower being sr#a) two paths Every spokes. of the half. people b )peroeption ý, and as section happier and the wheel, On the hell. into The three factors end four iouene by moha) dragged rim nidäna) the of depen- of 2)aggregates 4iäna) - monkey as the five A) conceived ), passion rebirths man with one of exi- of 1) the a stick. 3)oonsoiouenese vi and fume ), force cycle ignorance rebirth, the. twelve of a)feeUng ), d) people of upper the 3) chain whi by the background by six divided narak a wheel symbolizing ship in placed avid of or place representations l)ignorsnce origination: (ssýskkra) -a is circle ak, preta, symbolic dent climbing ti and miniatures origination concept to unhappy side other rebirth. endless representing as symbolized one destiny represents spokes rebirths, background snake, design a circular and on the religion, black space is of thus: represented by a green dyefia) centre one side öf.. tuhppiness . roots 2)hatred cock, Around pig. leading the rthree centre-. among L'evas as a continual is symbolized by a wheel representing the and effects (bhavanacakra T the Buddhist death life us akra). or sai s and by describing Wheel of Life. this stence can be explained At rebirth place causes of six five were of be reborn existence of concept there known as dependent e is existe tradition into to be a good place considered Petas(tormenaka (animals), to be reborn among (hells) to is considered phenomenal tradition Thus to superiority. (men) Na or governs Buddhist The six as one). hand other (pratityasamutpäda). the of titans) or in divided (In rebirth. order in Narakas or spirits) the in is i& being Devas and Asuras destinies, of S. (!! The phenomenal existence (gati) destinies or places _ symbolizing (salg )o 5)six the c) vol i sense-organs men and a woman embracing. (_tqa)a man with an arrow in his eye. 8)thirst a woman to drink 9)grasping a man. seated a u dJjna)- man gathering fruits offering from ' 10)conception' bMvs)---. .; tree. äti aº woman Ghi1a* ll)birth with a woman in -a death 'ar 12)old age and naraa}a)"- men earring a corpse. childbirth. -a 96 The whole wheel is For batsky, h da a for 6. Tib 7 At have: A&B this Five the text 8. which the nine The mantras eight of the and the in Ja]a the are Eight Tib A which to and of Goddesses. relevant On the the are of the is päraaitto urr rrrrwrrr together and the UR. ip s. . identical. Offerings either are six and four of means, choice knowledge. For Wisdom, Edward Etienne Lamotte, 2L Reading supplementary 8)pra detailed Conze, Sarvä mann' s Introduction B. BhattacharYSrat 100 Cwdhaha. s sti wi+rr+r r+. . ºidhlna or exposition of 1975" La ` list text tight It B incorporated worship ! u and Here ý, s. may be noted that here with associated ten. them on pp 166-73 S and Tib the nine Six principal 3)ky§änti righteousness, 6) ra as - meditation, 7)uß amine .. in the - means, skilfulness 9)bala resolution, 20)äxa power, itis see The Large Sutra on Perfect - aspiration, London its de la Grand Vertue de S sse, 1944. Louvain aäýa yayerit a 1' If s T'he land messing R the the these applies with 1)dänaa 2)%la $$ramitäs: - ,giving, liberality, - morality, 4)vß forbearance, heroism, 5) patience, vvigour, - wisdom; to hand other almost describe The commentaries notes Nine on to goes and thus Yamuni of applied Likewise glossary. destinies. evil Tantra visualizing Goddesses The number p9ramitäe. Buddha described. on page seed-syllables d)of odhana the the formula. r rgs, ti describes in spell. from is spells for B diverge and Four Th. Stcher- W. p and vi succession p 115 ff III involved rites obviously their Buddhas magla complete a different various Sa See part accordingly. every Buddhism, of see adhigJhäna pc " protective from the of the to spells pledge,, S and Tib point m=dala where ba ski term, of death. Conception 1974, Delhi the of samaya for spell, B has bsruýi Tib in reprinted interpretation this For basic 1923, London the lord see The Central. and MAMM. skandha by Hiraq clasped given in MS A appears du 22t moist literally io© to be an older EL-Me Bauddhi nhy 3eent"4lephant e, one. See de Mail- PP 340-41 , P 97and usually interpreted with to the fluid which eludes from the forehead of an elephant in rate, reference fort of may be a very early corrupted (best, aeti to referring ,L hero a , exoel2ent elephant. or leading) Il o Tib B has 4ýOd drug med s Aaa 97 1.4 For sadhana from Tib A until For 'gesture' the Through this it see drl uses but just are Buddhist the Fierce Divinities). 11, (see Introduction m5w 2, &f ibs par (y Factor is marks spokes and rim fingers, 5)soft 10)tine in hands 9)when member is private is 13)there one hair to in each stet teeth, 24)even tongue, 28)a the teeth, voice like 30)eyelashes is 20)he shape of ration Armales the a cap Guimet, VI, of and as soft For Paris, ). the his Quoted 1884, the after 80 minor their is like Might is very as a cuckoo's, between descrption chap VII, are ankles, to the of teeth, 29)very are black, 18)he has body, to equal white his out- 23)forty 27)a large black eyes, and 32)his head Buddha, Edward a more detailed see Le Lalita P 95 ff. knees, skin, a lion, lion-jaw, of his body 22)a eyebrows, 3'he Life marks of straight taste, 26)has 4)long 12)soft colour, very his one 1000 with reach hairs ruva) The 32 heels, hands body 21)keen gap-toothed, hair is 19) out, shoulders, 2s marks. part filled 14)the T@41 7)prominent has a golden 15)he right, 2)wheels his marks a Buddha. or and feet, skin, Man 3)projecting stooping his front pp 220-21, 32 major du Mis4e the 31)white us hands 11)he of a Great feet, feet, bodily minor is set his of a sheath, Brate an oz, 1925, Thomas, London, of like o Glassarg. (cakravartin) 1)well or not 25)ß, s not B mdzub (= vajra-circle). and eighty 6)netted has even Tib accordingly. see the Monarch pore to S. soles to and Curling straight rising ýn 6jh*; sea, 17)the promi , the space between the ehml-lore sd arms, S, corresponds an individual standing MS KLTHU. reads vajracakra marks Q) and feet, given liturgical a short which in Enlightenment . on the and nave I have collection as follows, are limbs, 8)aatelope HULU but before missing readings MSS. and I translate of and the meaning mention see Battacharyya' -Blazing--Flame-sun) see also Part III p 189(The ma{q alaa of phrase vajravidyl - mah puIa of (Vajra. reading that iana) are indications , become either a Universal and will lrka p 183, 1a, two bodily The thirty 2y Sanskrit for reading The commentaries its of in a private p inserts bo^dhicitta 2V in from ate finally p0 different MSS give Ti-. ri-ti-ri. regularly an obscure For bodbyahe 20. text Sanskrit as those agree p) B adds Tib the no explanation 18. asataärämvidrit_t, piis in the Glossary. ograpby, iIcon MSS seem to All Introduction see bh vanä Vajrjväl of See the I. B diverge S and Tib point in the Glossary. as variable The Indian Chapter quite give descriptic For of whole times several I& end of Tibetan name. there the translation For this this At see gloste. Vistara, J. elabo- e ý_: 98 these For Forlaocurate 21, . teere various understanding' TO B has log par ltufz A, The verb this In is arc s, abý ba ita) vini to that - calamity its Glossary. or ruin. into satisfactorily basic the in the Glossary. vit render follow in , and 'aüt see pratie difficult and those passage see dt is notion that English. fervent of e. g., to become a Bodhisattva aspiration, or to worship the Buddhas. details Doctrine in Buddhist Sanskrit see The Bodhisattva Literature, first Delhi 1975, Page 50. published 1932, reprint Al the Für text For the roots 2U. See Chapter %/,I lohi khor lha da$ iha srin hood nas salis yan lha za dan // in the Glossary. . rgyas imilar // is (s) mama akkYi // e satis ryas cad legs passage. dkyil sdig passage hkhor pa la Po lto in occurs soss hhe DSt 27-2-8 bsg+om par nam mkhar pa bfiags klhbyufi dvags po cri s maho saris ryas thams text. pa yi da« mchod // min dri gio,. d sbyin Ilan soil Sanskrit data boas sogs kyis me tog see kuäalamüla page $7 for a similar the tshogs see p. ". hyi of merit III to See note this of For more Rar Deyal, bya the ff: bya// // // nam mkhar btugs pahi dky-il hkhla ni // ion tan brood pa bsýcrim bya ste // // sans rj7as mdzad Aa mchog mdzad legs // s nas // hgro rnam byan chub thop par mdzad // sb soße thams cad kyis // thal iao rab tu sbyar byes to // de ffid du nip mi snaA // ge phyag titshal Lias j/ ya ºur _sefdaisisklu 1L from Inserted M1 Tib B simply DMV p 9-5-2: having reads: han soh thsms boung cad bralbaii and subdued them, shags he places so. (them) in space B omits JU . Tib j. TO inserts Theme ze and 'water'. fiYa - look3 are arranged Sss ML14A -. in bly referring . 26b 32b. 4UL Tib B has mi bugs Symbole which are not cihna) used abyin here in here app eaarrvevit. into four this sets as bra dhqxqwp , tarma Glossary. to the mantras pree folios the after given an folios 5b-8a, but see also äicara rnax : ab. ____ seem to refer set of gestures. to the iaplem. nte, vajra, bell eta the ý,+Q, - 99 The first 'U. For Five For Five 14 ra Asthanaka Tib see Part Wisdoms four B reads UV;Llfas p 173. See also kh b of fte Kaga. AýA See HV Il, iv, 3o; v, 11. 4 Bu ddhaputra y Tib = Buddha-Son B has gabs bsil ö Tib B has br E4 For all these MA " sin in used here instead = Rid a pa Piid(= spells is &atattä) their Five fri. Wisdoms. 5, and p 129. HV p 84, fn. 2. for complete as a synonym of b nor thu! context. tja ýa No 528. TibBhas the tatet in the present a suitable seen with HV p 62, see BHS under aIMM, see also does not nam III here associated are of z = dhi. Bodhisattva ca S eatatta. forms Lt7d4t8. see page a. See Mvy 100 TOc xo (for i. Tib A reads mthas bi 11 be af be e of Tib B) * by the power(of the Lord). 2. The identifications have been below, here dala S and Tib not supported taken by any of bar grin or stopf I have used this kyamuni, East: the gesture yajra a:; i, earth with gesture Ug Norths gesture with the right of the description brackets the of whole vyidyä which tmries, Sb is scarcely si, Tib satisfactory A bhr to is and by explained S and TO ärti B is inserted here from Tib A and Vv 147-4_5= gnu " ha in Vv 147-1-4 colour, ff! wearing a gazisent of yellowish colour and meditation, in holding colour, his a Yaj as with hand right and touching one. bab ter), gSM hand and holding (91-85A Ulr cho, preaching yellow in colour, a blazing jewel k MM e making the gesture with the left one. loos ! MME ba), biss right with mod. with his left (AMEX 'a. ! PJ 190 RK 9901 a Ravi hte4 of fearlessness with tit right red in colour, of making hand and holding a wheel on a lotus resting the left U }igacakravartin Wests the his iia(rGyal Souths Jayo giving of blue with For the by To 40a3 as chod (imp of good I !a) = cut offl interpretation in the translation. golden the making B reads of the ma. ala9 6. Description Centres Tib in omitted sarvävara cala Wit Gala ff. between is explained versions) mantra, inserted = ßd4 (all This ihr 146-4-8 the 4. Trata 5. from bh tja. A read Ts 40a2 as drat divinitiea, various 6 below. see note 3. the of left his South-east: holding holding in his H*9rtt-rest: holding üi fil (MM solar disc id 1 in his right making a crossed pale hand and an at UTeaYidhvg vajra cite of in victory his right blue in a stalk in , pale blue hand and an u ala colour, his in left colour, and a hook one. (A,Tsug for UgLLavikirir a blazing Ntorth easta U holding too a Lion Ia banner left colour, one. a shining South-west: in green " and holding a white sword in his in ri (IMM i, $aai111-22 t umbrella ba), 3000 rr t hand and a red lotus his right ter 92M hand. golden red in colour, in his left one. McIr po), golden white in colour, one. 101 g. sre in the four corners and the Four GuarTM Goddesses of the Offt pta+aea The Sixteen Bodh! sattvas of the dime of the Gate in their appropriate Farther on the outside there are Good Age are oa&the faux side. of t. pp 1713. give detailed see Part III khaº a doesn't descriptions description of this For detailed JA1a and all the follows that SO Bum gbu and the Six Spheres of Existence. Direetious t 4w Gusrdissrs of the ' ff 56-5-6 givaes a different as follower the s al describes hwolng an eV"amunas Contras IVSMMML hands left gºotar" and right F disoription from that in ool our, of a manic, golden of giving of Vv. and meditation, his with seated with legs. , hdW j reg and bell. vs Ya ra 'äßi, green in colour, . Bests his right blue in left hands holding oolour, and with pale Souths , banner of victory, a and vajra a holding both h Ands. an eight-spoked yellow in *ol Wests Ca rays C. with wheel + the gesture of fearlessness Noeths VQ,a a. yellow in ool0Urlmsking with both hands. Ai holding a sun marked with a jewel. for pale red in colour, Southeast: crossed pale, blue yjdhwiM. PjMa South-wests holding in colour, a club his with right hand tors finger the threatening si4ps with of the left one. and making hand and making red in oelour,,. bolding a sword in his right North vests 3ikir ,,, hand. threatening signs with frrýf, ýta = of the left }+ tsa. ta holding a white Sit. arm o white in colour, North". easts bandle., golden a with umbrella The disoription a symbolic giving is associated giro= by interpretation with are associated in with read sr s#ah cX053 to the cas describe 4b*W, tJW to comprehends the and, so forth, together joined held at the pledge psis "oh. of fe and made into heart, concerned with * by in the trans- Bess of elimination. the p3o4ae-1pata *i 3ff I have followed *Wass ixt the V&jM as follows srs have i to the P1414P Of 3049 Speech and Ninid. With regard At + Ls the pled4p of B4y. It leads into the the on., the sutras more a. Thus the centre which soon The second is bis, tea 8. S and, TO 3 desaxibo UO 14W* I follow TLb A whi4b 7v FaaUi. tea. }c. k- Ssiriac lation. of the ff of the maq4ala and the spokes, with the Sambhoaakäya. The Uthe Five Wil Buddha activities is and the different to lid relationship 7. Tib 9 the 34 .. 3-2 t comprehends third lines t sit It is on., a pointed the pledp a lotus and held to be made on the the vajra of middle fingers It occasion of fingers and other Mind. below is applied the of the put in throat, reciting vaýjra_bond together all secret and 102 and fozasulas. Matme .. r V the tb w ra one is used third for A (p138-1-8) tare of meld like is rtes fingers This from are arranged says that 13. Tib Tib is gesture all is 14. sins. three use upwards is the the for ff performing to relating in The middle vajra-bond. the same way as in made into are consecration basic the ges- a point mantra to and the of as before. between and placed However , arvavit. Ts 44a5 consecration. phyag the rja three finger stretched all a point of held are by mtshi out. intervals = the gesture Vv says that evil of the left the burning of this destinies gesture are hand are Then he should of ha(weapon). worship recited. put change together from and so on, right and hand. gesture to the gesture of describes pabi little be done in fingers overcoming) eliminating are made into by Vv 148-5o-5. supported ones right reference the the and little Ratnaketu's cad areg mantras this relates is is remaining he should With of The thumb and the and this 15. gesture reading vv 148-5-6: To 44bl made at pa theme odig left to TathL- wording. worship when the applied Drasahana(resisting, when the applied and the the B translates This is gesture is this A reads: the recited. This joints, the fingers and ring fingers, thumbs The ring 148.5. -3fft fingers are The forefingers and the middle the for used w 12. of Vv 148-3-8 second different a slightly derived is gesture leaf. a lotus Families doctrine. is gesture The forefingers ra, Rä i. v ¶Nthiga This and little thumbs firs, same with this the meditation, the Three achieved. laukika). world fft Vb 148-5-1 U. that explains this the says the is see BH p 62 ff. these for teaching Speech and Mind to relate first Tib ae of gestures Concerning and the Body, of Padma. rites, 148-4.8 essence and the the that explains of two following and the This the Thus with gesture Pup Vikasitakusuma of Puqýä, Tib of the A readst Karma_Family. raising it from below . the gestures of the Four Goddesses of the Offerings as fingers the little throbs the together. follower are and The remain_ put from the jug ones are held at an angle as if forming a censor. puh above from fingers below the are unfolded upwards as if representing the opening gesture VT 148-5.8ff Api binds the flower. one vajra-fists with the thumbs protruding of a Gancüaä from the above gesture one forms one's hands like a conch shell. (=scent) dri has B 16. Tib 17. Tib A has gIxigs for duuh(=conch shell) dicar mo = Sitätan aträ. of Tib A.. in front. F ýý 103 description the follows Here , whose names are never given they hold. For W nt which 1)Va VV 149-3-4ff: from the puts together 3)Va a hook. a little and bent first and the nail intermediate joined together are the together made into 10)V like The head. and made into are like stretched joined together. inside and the For Tib a little the the are remaining of the agreement B suddenly a point, and made into end at and the each with Vairasatt' with this point, bent and held a point and the fingers other and held bent. thumbs are are placed firmly. pp 14813_ III like and and firmly out B has jg: U fingers middle are out. made into are little The paragraph are together put fingers a point see Part S. TO fingers and held apart made into stretched and firmly. are ring are and bent out, 13)VajrakarmazThe fingers put and stretched The forefingers out. united Sixteen the of joint. The thumbs ones are a point hands joint The ring drawn a point, for- on the fingers second and held finger both of stretched joints : The tips are, bent the a point thumbs thumbs the two forefingers the made into are made into The middle 16)Vairasandhi: actions made into are the 9)Vajradhargas and second second at into the the of From all fingers face. and stretched l4)Vairarakaa: A has nffea ma in 20, S and Tib 0000 a little arbb4 at ga: The forefingers ra bent and then 12)Va The thumbs out. joined, the together The fingers t it made into are one places one rarä'at and making tips forefingers the 2)Va out. the 7)VAJ are crooked and then 6)Vajratejass The thumbs an arch vajrao a crossed fingers together dhtuPutting rat vajra-bond first the at a circle. and bent joined 15)Va is forefinger a point point III one presses The middle pp 169-70. see Part out. towards ll)Vajrahetu: an arch, left 8)Vajrahäsa: The ring 4)Va an imple- names or forefingers the gesture forefingers. their of forefinger right thumbs, are put Vajrasattvau Sixteen and stretched the From the fingers bent a point, ratikWa: together and stretched so as to positioned of the of middle on the placed the a part are joint. second joint joints only the of description above 5)Vajraratna: a square. ming the at but projecting : From the rar. gestures full rounded fingers the The fingers sattva: all full in their bond are perfect of 4920 sr to the and of this 138-3-7 Tib A from A the Tib long is continues onwards. with added Section dismstion with which leads into the beginning of the next section joining Lord Va i '7be ib Brahmä S 'Then ra etc', with B and at gladdened eta'. ? at As for in detail the rites which one should by Vv 149-5-6ff. They refer ing gestures, maditating perform in them to drawing the MS and making propitiations for they are described of the UjqiVae, living beings. 101 The above the nations: in that l) the Ahgrai this and 2) that world in the to He attempts Tathägatas. by giving it the obstructions the obstructions two possible by the not beings to living refers t iAm Concerning statt solve destroys it 18 above. S. See note of b04 dPa.g med ° sees difficulty vv 155-1-5ff all in missing the spell This is Vv 154-5-2: of is paragraph who are expla- Tathäiatas to become striving Baddhas. Two s MSS read a later introduced version for sarvakarýä to the solve Vv 155-2-3: This is the spell of 2S. VV 155-3-2s This is the spell of 2. Vv as above: Varaýi, his with Eaet: Aic obhya, West: Amiit in Ratnasambhava, North: Amoy the 'Q are three mantras and by making fying and the Vaira a's .in your ted good the with sins the for the - m Ratnasambhava, Amoghasi ddhi . . Vv 156.1-8ffs vajra hand which binds the rest. mantra gesture gesture at the on the rests the making the of heart hip. He is s gesture of the the comes from muuddr1ss. Without He performs in this case the ( ardian3 'athä, M, tas the seed-syllables the the '0 Lord, rite other in his VVajrräckuga recitation of the between the rite of puri- enters the ma a.1a d ba ii_ las). sevenfold worship, meritorious thist and the any distinction fivefold is and maditating them by means of making the and perfoms Four beings and performs the giving. fearlessness. of by performing gates them water of and the living them and comforts of gesture places. ons which meditation. preaching. Offerings appropriate teacher of of the making benefit light the the the He consecrates I beg you to hold gods me Taatdatsa up he should , and getting those who are oppressed by ra , possessed of little merit and of limifortune, and who are also void of the great knowledge. They are introduced, and their make supplications their their gesture pledge'* introduce Goddesses he offers images of the colour, guardians other and their essence in 6iinyatä, and the with making colour, in placed He summons them, sins Qru a five-tipped left in Eight by means of heart. Don yod his meking Concerned of nature ldan äßi, colour, white the of Vv 156-3-lff: divinities itn1i holding with colour, white siddhi, Gates on the in white South: of Ak obb a. of colour, be may well ornaments. , white The set spell hand and a bell all with in white right adorned the This difficulty. apparent of the map. ala of V 2$, Description Centres is This 1MOtIvvaýra4a. a.. are eliminated ceremonye, sins their are eyes destroyed should by means of be covered recitations. and the teacher Once proceeds 105 is Va rahäsa Q. Tibetan this rather bäh. equivalent the point eyes More suitable are twelve the the As for etc. R, cam, heart, navel, the Buddha to refers this of Goddesses and other items such as pearls, of mouth, and head. entered yourself ance the with into Word of 6&7)These ration. Five 5)The be ä.s rya' face, as at the etc, gold items the centre the Tathä the in atas two consecrations and bell are Wheel order to garland pronounce either items 4) Making the madrIs ears, these nostrils, 'Orp having words! the Buddha. -Doctrine to bring living beings of The teacher as one. given the head, the eyes, with vases to both referring divinities. five of allowed forehead, on the anointed is seedw on the the of the va ra turn is on the rites consecrate their pupil consecration consecrated receives oqp vajra 3) By the and their is pupil his consecration spells the all by means of consecrate pupil of Sarvadurgatipari The pupil the or Families pupil neck. perform 1) number: The teacher etc). states spells. a, 2)The different to the Yai parts. of and in ability in eleven should Locani those the Families Five the the of spells nape to referring and Ts 5Ob6al so has its Tantra the Buddhas: and private and the and the Five are concentration ears, spells would by applying 'K'antre they forehead, the reading acquires and Vikasitakusuma. amuni, it this in as the of and states throat, mss consecrations, The consecration syllables instructed as of man explain uncovered. A pupil 11. Vv 156-5-3ff: . the concerning meditation in Vv does not odd. in to accordmatu- performs the consecration with the wheel and the seven jewels (for those of Cakravartin 8) the to Chap. III). In the pupil receives No eighth consecration see note 9) The nineth consecration the names of the Zätthj&ata Families. to the refers dk raThe and the drg rites of the teacher explains for the j all Secret five white drops ba%i don irb1a like Meaning, pearls le dk ui /. ll)The fes bya O dbaxi lta to the dalas. 10)As and know her into the the pupil for the lotus mou h(of rig(V d eleventh By Means. means of meditation and consecration the pupil tenth, thoroughly od thig different is stages he should himself. the of pupil), ar b concentration bind He should the discharge bcu pa ni ate Qsah mu ti bar bya ba ate de ni said be to the union of Wisdom refers taught the nature of the Great Bliss. I have quoted the Tibetan for the tenth consecration, as it is interesting is interpreted in terms of anuttaratantra to note that here our Yogatantra iii,, 13-17.180A HV II, kha 5lblffinterprets See the whole list Ps, practice. of (slob dpon y, these censecrations an the Master Consecration dbaii). ý., lo6 interpreted have l2, i kig boar la da, i bee, e rabL rie rdo in This phrase is missing To 52a4 says a five-tipped He is hip. the he looks piths Viril on the lap ra, in jewels his Vai 7) Ts 54a holding holds for together from having colour, its translated A= colour Goddesses his red a large and the of hand right his eyes, in in two different k(am) bu in spells and resting his head right surrounded hand and 4) Rs = in thus: i) stomach, filled skin his hand he holds left living Tib with beings B, a mon- from poverty) bsos(2): as aim. following A. orderst) dBah 5) Varw = Srinß, 6) 9) Bha in 141 ma, 10) missing. r Je. Ta= holding mongoose ways in Vai the round freeing and thus mouth aNod sbyi n, interprets on . a vajra with hand and a bag made of hand. (According to Ts 53a2 in The, in red rests lap. in the are with his right lists one which flower. conspicuous a noose he holds seated. a sword a lotus a twist hand right left a vir1 his Ku = rLuA lha, 8) 6ff and playing made into The Eight he is golden b in. 3) A= bra colour is his eyes of on which colour, and as rnamthoss Vv 160-4-4 His crossed. lotus hair his with a' is shod gear as 4allae. worldly With ornaments. legs colour, six brown and a bell his in jewels ravarýa Vail, heart on the left showering goose his colour, and other in He holds in a jewel-club in on the in red a, Vaifrava North: as follows. hand which hand rests left ala the of The representations blue left his hoods, by snake ma white a Vi rap Wests the with depicted Dh; tarä East: first the mar %&--Yon tzae xmi nn la, the impressive. are U vv 157-4-6, with S. green at seated very offerings his vajra lapa is a diadem with and adorned accordance this dark 1, ]aIra Centre: that describes Vv 159-3-lff in vInAv4Jreua Wi dan, 2) Sa = Chu l ha, 2) Indra = dBsfi oo. din 2J e 5) Rin i to 11 , 4) Ye a= 6) Varuf Ae=M ; rice, s Chat b4 ha, 8) Kubem = Todebyin, 9) Id 7) Vaya" = rL i to = Ni ma sl. a akar yaf, 10) Varadw a Pl Yasudhar Sah Lha mo. fir' describes vv 160-4-Sff Va ra äßi. centre: East: w With his South# (brGya right with his In his left white hand he holds Yams (gtin appearance. byin),, the neq4ge in right hand he holds in colour, hand he makes a threatening on a lion, seated a thunderbolt blue ýI.. I. ýI... ii. . as followss oolour, r j*),, I= and his seated a club left hand on a buffalo. made of gesture. skulls wearing a head.. drees. rests an the hip. He is fierce in and similar things, hieß 107 (Chu iha), a Wests Vart on a makars and a lotus , and having his in in colour, a smiling face. white left adorned with In his seven hand right hoods, snake he holds a snake-noose one. Yakima ( looking very impressive, od sbyin), golden in colour, having a large stomach. In his right on a horse or on a lion, Norths either seated seated hand he holds a club studded with jewels and a mongoose in his left one. ( bDeb ed), grey in colour North-ea. sts gahk He is and seated on a deer. is made into and his hair smiling a diadem adorned with half moons. In his right ba) in his left hand he holds a trident and an orb ril one. together, cial ladle 41ti ). he holds hand right left Viyu his a banner (Zenit)s in He holds a lotus (Nadir): In his one yet (WA iha a garland ladle another is colour and seated (rluii gi rkal hand and a wind-bag Aditya is his of Varu to referred hand right a is hand he holds right in , white of in front To 56b5ff left bDe ), and in as Varäharüpa ti bus Pbur = vv 162-3-2ff the 6)1ba agrees. in Pa a Only sa is, eight spells are RV=(No8) and Ketu are the Ke, in black and a sacrifiblu mar - 32ur He holds ba) left colour in Centres Vom, ,, on the colour north sition the is - lap. and seated on a pig. B. 1)Ädiit required which e= te, 2)So_chu(? for the be the for 1, hag, 5)Briha.. ppaa, 8)AIM would descending li Budhaha) open - Vv 162.. 4.-7ffs aya. as Trailokyav appearing bDud rtai 4) the on a horse. and seated 8(`rß an. ms 4ala, but most " spell and ascending On the petals of the Eight oar whiah he is seated there are representations On four side one should draw the Four Ma dräss Offer, 2)Tmilo d3), je o), ok a(Kham s Ta ib gOR4 r east, one. of nodes Ketu of the moon. of the ma ala" AQ, Description the his in one a vase. S and Tib 7)lane6cara MSS add a ninth. -Ku or Sanskrit (Muff rnix). in bunched is on a stag. one rests left his as follows: spells red ma), and his Indra a hook the explains Ni Soma) a Zia ba, 3)Aiig räga = Mig dear, 4)Buddha(for to hair po), dark red in colour, seated on a man, having hand he holds a sword and a human head in his In his right right In front Indra of and his slim one. North-wests In very colour, (Srin AEftsa appearance. wrathful in golden In his on a goat, ) and in his seated (dga South-west: left 1M lha), Ai( South-east: a jewel the muräs envelopped following to iKhi 1 ba). the of south, the Four by a garland orders ter, (According a lotus Buddha made of to to the Families, flowers. of the lotus Goddesses of the 1) Yamänt _ Bin ý To 56b6 one should ýrýTa mgrin),, draw a vajra aest* and a crossed to vajra ). The whole central compoThen there are the planets 108 (Pa wa sa'is), Eastt & kra He is smiling and adorned hand he holds in left his the made of on a lotus and seated colour with a necklace ornaments pearls and garments and a round twelve with of a god. filled vessel petals. In his with right ambrosia one. Bthaspati South: in red bu Phur hand he holds an iron left one a bow represented Soma right hand he holds together arrow ba), Zia West: in golden a garland with on a lotus. and seated colour In flowers made of his right and in his by a lotus. in red colour and seated a moon which on a lotus rests He is on a goose. and a lotus in stalk his In smiling. his left one. lI Budha North: hand he holds South-east: (ra skyes head Ailgäraka his in left He holds left (fiiA right North-east: He has a terrifying threatening are and four heads the left Lunar one. in in on a brown and seated his right one a vessel goat hand and a human right The upper colour. that fierce. colour, of part his body He has brown a snake. He holds of a sun in his hair hand right In his in with on a chariot sun on top a radiating the right bowl colour and seated hand he holds right by a garland Nakfatras in of it on a tortoise. a club and makes colour on the outside on a red lotus. of which s and seated hands she holds a lotus She has eight and a garland,. and and incense. colour breasts. right and seated one. white in a lotus black a), surrounded in smiling one. are with white the in left white of protection stalk very his In arms. mGo), a lotus red Mansions drug),, ma), 3) left with and has prominent a gesture ma), ones an alms 2)Ro(sNar tiful is in downwards hand he holds Planets (sMin 1)Kjtt-iika in the red waist appearance. signs The Eight there the in his left stalk Sanaigcara (sPen and a lotus left In his one. Ri his dark appearance and a moon in his xditya North-west: In red in colour (gri gag) in very a dagger an), and from His eyes. rta). on a lotus. one. has a human form and large dinar), R. hu (sGra South-west: and seated garland Mi kham pa). colour at the heart and in his ) bum ma pa. filled with camphor. a golden (bya bird a of a shape in golden a), her colour, hand and seated She holds left on a bullock. a flower in her She is right very beau- hand and makes one. seated and making on a red the deer(ka gesture of §a dinar mo), protection with holding the 109 La ), 4)Ard rä in white the hand and making right colour, gesture verbal of in a flower (tshig sbyin holding on a snake, seated communication can), with the left one. ( Nabs so red in colour lotus, 5)punarvasu on a and seated , hand and making the same gesture in the right with the left the pal, 1 p vag rra 6)Pu§Za r in red al), colour and seated hand and makes the gesture (sKa ), white in colour, 7)Afiled of right hand and resting 8)Na ä right hand and making 9)pirvaphal in red mChu), left the right guni(Gre), gesture in golden hand and making right (dBo sbo), 1C)Uttaraphalgun3 in the the in a noose the in , golden the the hand and making right 13)Sv äti Sa ri the (Sa_ga), 14)VigW pennant with colour, seated of left of left holding 16)J= jhä cup in a tortoise right 17)Mla in red sNron), the left red in the seated holding one. fruit an arura in the a noose in the in the the in gesture of the (lido chair and (reading on a crow on a sedan and making hand right p ho rog left one. li ), holding protection with the stalk in one. aNrubs), hand and making seated-on a moon, holding the same gesture as IrdA with red in colour, hand and making right (Chu stod), 18)pürvaV9dh the gesture seated colour, of the on a man, with protection a kumuda the left one. holding left a lotus 20)SravaTJä (Gro blin in the star a shining (Pyi bfin), it 21)Abhi hand and making V`v si), for right red the red in hand and the in colour, gesture of colour, left seated on a bullock, hand on the seated on a rock, protection with the in the one. (Chu ), holding l9)Uttargal smad), red in colour, seated on a paniti(? blazing jewel hand a which rests on a lotus and making the gesture right the left one. with protection right left the one. holding hand and a noose right colour, hand the right in one. a lamp left the a club holding a flower holding a sword hip. for phug), left with hording on a goose, 15)Anurdhä the protection with protection the the in one. one. of protection gesture with the left (lHa mtshems)* golden in colour, seated making the a vase on an elephant, on a goat, one on the colour, in one. ), holding bra on a peacock, the seated left with seated gesture seated colour, in golden the the as Xrdrl colour, colour, gesture in golden hand and resting right in holding on a rock seated sane gesture golden hand and a silk right (Nag a), golden in 12)Citrä in colour, a trident sram), with protection hand and making right Me b1i 11)Hastä of the hip. on an otter seated in one. holding on a stag, one on the colour, the seated a lotus left the with a garland one as Ardrä. He holds on a moon. protection holding in the of holding hip, holding left a: lotus one. in the 110 (Mon 22),., atabhigi an arrow in the in colour, green , hand and a bow in right ), (N 23)22ýalq 24)P5rrvabhadr ýacl ), a hook and the leading pupils Vadhara they eyes the Most Mvy No 8216 u the of to a vajra left one. hand holds The right on a preta. and other commentaries. the As phyag the rgya po bpi. then For the obstructions interpre- sauftla ba), rgyal par brp the saying himself, them and invites the vajra this flowers pledge leading etcl. jewels Next gesture of into the taken from The pupils are their in they them them and water mantra. or and makes he makes the Before himself adorns worships reciting and holding before recitations Next intro- of obstructions washes pupils. with mantra performs mar; iala. his the teacher divinities, in sAags = the destroying the to covered are for -pa i ornaments, instructions am throw hands flowers etc'. the names of 8323. 96-5--2ff the Tib jug First places their Victory(r their holding We follow as it a. and other bip Va ra-Planets KlAadh mark appropriate approach saying mantra applies the he destroys Vase of i). throne, on a golden on a deer, and seated by Vv 162-4-1 this and gives mapdala (th note. garment their and seated as XxdrFL with same gesture oceans. Tha he summons all offerings. 43, w pported into a white washed, stern nafi on a throne and seated and seated Dolour great W 163-4-5ff but the four Ts 57a4 interprets take couch one a noose. see previous duction, to left is reading with on a soft seated on a horse. and seated colour the in green B hive: 1. S and Tib 4 in green Bra üe i tation colour hand and making right 28) in red 27)Aivvin ä (Tha ekar), This colour, ms stad), green in colour ({hrwne amad), red in colour Nam 26)Revatl Jýý'ý one. (Kh 25)Uttarabhadrapýää the in and red holding ). oai? tssbaz'i(s) in green left the throne, on an iron seated See also in time MW for interpreting correspond periods individual time the with the list interpretations. periods and the result given in 2ff To 57b follows is quite arbitrary. Al. To 58a3f f identifies the e lie 2)org,, (Rigg ldan). 7)0i phai - 5)2' a ß)o! ki # (Nor ir =a . 1)ozp 2hu = Ananta (m e. ($s 4)fig 'ß.., h,ä = adoll r). WkhapI. 6)c the (Dail a eo i). an follows: ). (Chi ha). Vv 164-3-5ff agrees. ill Vv 164-4-6ff ü, VVaraa centres Here he is East: He is in holding a white clasped by his holding lotus V. suki heads, the a lotus stalk lotus and a snake in an his snakes his colour, his right head and is head adorned hand and a vajra right in colour, golden in the right Nor seated in five with the left his snakes, He is one. head adorned with hand and a vase in the left heads, He is clasped North-west: five snakes, one. He. is clasped In snakes. one. jS his right He is In his black. the head adorned in a wish-granting-gem He is one. by his clasped white in right hand and a conch wj his colour, five with the right consort. head adorned in shell five with the left one. 9V, ß , has rb , head surrounded hand he holds by five snake heads, in his and a fruit a lotus consort. in white hand he holds by his his right (CbM. 11a), a noose his colour, made of head adorned snakes five with and a lotus in his consort. either TO by Yaýjra by his clasped read left his colour, holding red in colour, seated on an snake-seat. left one. He is clasped North-east: in consort. pale Vax. blue pale in a snake by his _ as), in the ala) a (DiWkyozi), u holding snake r on a saske-seat, ikrhapI South-weest: = well ias= radiant well 'Vr$g = black. or. seated, This last Tib ro&ding B has ram is eupported 0 Tib A and vv 165.. 1-7 have pfd for phu-A. Tib B hass we will produce all flowers. TO B has: WAS world RL-QAMULcad bskyed par bEyi 0 we viii the whole terse to grow. S hast viert gXhya regard to the blaa2ie which is ambiguous regard to with He is consort. hand and a lotus with throne. an a snake-samt. a blue He has five in red in (Rigg, is n), South-east: 20. and seated la. sS on a gnaw seated hand he holds one. previous consort. a white by his Al. colour right left rgyu), water-lily Kum Norths = very his In his consort. (sT'obs kyi a Weets Karko left in white and is the by his clasped snake heads snake by his consort. clasped ), blue in colour, holding (Jog hand and a tortoise as in same appearance seven snakes. one. Volt South: the as), five left his with (i with the mmqjala as followsI having adorned nanta adorned in describes the " having one affected poison, in grasped by poison; meaning. the poison. this Vv 165-5-1 Tib Bt makes good reads simply z in sense. Ala Tib la A: jtg }aio and 112 Ts 50b2ff 1L dab boaae va. u ati ma daft boas ohu 1)]21&! 4-5ffs 9)Kartika pa. bhera 5)Indra r+.... pa. byed gtum mo. 4)] Jig 6)hJigs byed lag brkya'i. Vv 166-5--4ff gives bred 7)hJigs Srin 5) iJigs bid bas 8)#Jigw khro byed 2) Jigeýhyped wo, emyo byed, byed boas daft ma obuh rrr rr drug r: rnrý sMin yyed Chen po & hJigs 3) Jigs bhera r and Vv 166- _Lpa; brgyad Zanrlag ikhor los seyur. thud pa, 9)ý, Jigs byed pa. byed oms. sro 5. Va'ra Centres colour, he holds trident, having a threatening noose, gesture. are looking tiger's skin, eyes Wigs right hand and a skull the hJige and a skull filled is on a deer. standing byedDkhor Wig! and brown with blood his consort with hair in raised his his left he stands South. -east: Wi and having brown filled with in the in the In in his round left In his one he makes brown, is body. his He is coal. his right left he stands left wrapped his With feet wrapped holding black in colour, hand he holds wrapped in consort tiger's skin. a dagger tiger's in his with having on a lion, the Licht consort round red a book and a skull skin in skin, standing a trident Together one, in his wrathful holding colour, his with He has one. in a sword an tiger's in one, left ba, holding colour, the in colour, sMr He is and together he eyes filled with boar. brkyaii, In his fifth po, hands right blood. a mass of burning like byeed then his In hair His consort. gtum. mo, black in one. blood. the black black on a wild hair. and with and together los d lag head, consort rten) blood up. with blood with byed, s wo filled and snakes brL. ^,rad pa, with and skull z. Tigs etc. appearance, bled a skull Vyu feet: arms. by his stomach dlas and ten hums and glowing jig Wigs Norths clasped filled byed(for terrifying west: He is hand and a human head right having axe, b eed yan lag and together vase, hook, on Bhütas, East: Souths wheel, the of At his legs four heads, has a large tramping description as Trailokyavijaya. upwards he is appearance following five sword, he holds hands the appearing in black in brae dah ma rr 1Ha chufi iri . r. ýrýrr Chen Kbyab 6)Kamadeva bhera 1 od lha chuff ma daft bcas pa. dais boas ma i pa. 8)I3hriz3 riti bhera bhaira bhera Tshogs bdag ma daft bam . dBazi vo of 7)2 4)Mahgdeva wr. r. nýrr byed ma )Pi iqu bhira ,3 Tshafis pa chuh daf boas ohuär! rma rr r... ýrýr.. r. r. pa. byed Wigs 1) Wigs as follows: the spells identifies 2 )ßa rn bhi right Together black in colour, hand he holds with his wrapped in an axe and in consort he stands tigers his skin left on a tja. one hand 113 a a harmer he holds land Together his with North-casts with byed 'Jigs his consort All the Ji the left the his In filled one a skull one. and terrifying stomach. holding colour, in His . Phraznita, a byed ibar babenams is bDe soss ma. Tigsbyed The female Wigs easts o female a dagger Together right blood. with in the right his consort as those above. with partner bred partner left one human entrails. heads on their and they and their Together differs from that and their don't seem to okyaviJaya. At his bodies are bone ornnaments. other Bhairavas names of is female partner is partner fit given female very above. partners. He describes well. in white eyes bjýbyed his and showing bred iJiga , The female partner called colour. kyi dbah fangs. ma Umader is Tshafis pa pa. and holding dark in colour dark in red colour a trident. and holding The female a skull and a club. dark in green colour and holding s, wheel. Korima. dark red in colour, holding an arrow and a bow. Bernabi. dark blue B diýbam, partner in color and holding an aase. is not given. b hai snow white in colour and holding a sword. Kwmxhara. bred Gauaati The female partner is Camuti. Jjgs three feet: Raufirima. bled Kil is is partner Yakgabhairava, is having appearance, 1,22jigs bared Bhaifänta, Norths. w $t$ Wig Northo-easts sarge appearance his and in as Trail Kalabhaira, bid South irrest: Liss The now of the female fessle the by Kamadhenu 40-1-lff byed Bhairava partner The female having human bone and with Sanskrit wrathful jigs ti in skulls doubtful are $ouths Norths five appearing a khaIv rinn Ao the firsts . hair as follows: Vajrapanai He holds Frasts of terms Mah d va_, 2 given a number maudala Centre: on a R1kja brown on a camel. made of garlands The Sanskrit the left in good, Bhairava. s have with adds a large his a trident he stands The description It blood srog hand he holds right adorned and having black po, with having and in he stands thod colour, on a buffalo. he stands his iron filled hand and a skull In made of bred in black skin, consort ti. Tigs North-wests bo, tiger's in wrapped arance, khro bred Jigs South -vests j dark blue in colour and holding a blazing va ra. 114 U. . 1)(xp ä Li-14u gives = Kt +ab 4)0c Ka-aadeva 6)o ßh - 5) c Drag" i (for Ka oYp oil = psis pa. 6) eon 5) nu ma. qi a 1) and their 3)of sc Ira aº ati) 4) . 7) Bhhzj -B = dKaz o. the maqdala - _dLapo_bdag. and Vv 168-4-4ff: Ing - identifications: Tshogs - . nu Rdoh drug Ka - KVmIa,% " &ton ]Uu 3)& dab 2 )Bhi 7)q riti. i d- 2)°g . Dod Ihr of the spells list the following Ts 62a2ff br(ra I= riti. 8)Ka on a bullock byin. hDod jai. 1 hamo. Vv 168.. 5-6ff 54. East: Lha chen po four arms. In one. His he makes the is body His three smeared with With Tshafis his he holds hands Khyab North: With his in second is appearance first his right one terrifying. a three-tipped peacock's red-golden in colour with orbed adorned for On his thunderbolt and head he has a golden and seated diadems. and a garland. anointing and having on an elephant on a lotus With his with sixteen two principal two lower His diadem. hands rest smiling. blue in colour 4a. He has four and seated on a a wheel and a jewel diadem and with his hands he holds two upper one a conch-cup. left lower his and with seated colour, head. Vi§Mu), u , and a trident and his seated hand he brandishes heads He is heart. the in white right a vessel hip having ashes. Brahmä), Pa He is seated a sword on the rests giving. Indra), He has three petals. hand hand he holds left West: at gesture colour, hand he holds right left second byin eyes. his first his in black Nahädeva), of brGya South: in as followas Trailokyaijaya. Centre: left describes his With lower hand he makes the right gesture arms. of giving. South-east: black Sie is in colour left hand on the nl rdu« yob) . colour her left and looks 'Brahml She is ction aV himself. adorned at Brahma. with her all with adorned at affection female She holds all )9 Indra' right with s female kinds of xma, b a,hj She is partner. hand she holds all fan a peacock a thunderbolt white and in has prominent ornaments, India. Her colour partner. an orbed ornaments, 'i d of a: ph ug ohen po ldahelivara . kinds She holds her of ornaments. one she holds right In her eyes. She is with Brahma's partner l ha mo (Meade and has three North-west: of and in one a lotus. breasts female and adorned hip Dod South-west: in the 2L# &riji, vessel has prominent for and appearance anointing breasts is like that and a garland. and looks with affe- 115 she holds hand A and Vv 168-4-8 Tib vases round their their seals. filled with On the the five 56. Vv 170-1-6 items Holy lation kle6as. of and holy false notions Mind because its nature 58. Tib living all it remains called h bsod name dais da she on a lotus hand he makes the ambrosia Fists left po like, garlands, also scented there place is because profound all living beings of the of all It Three is Times accumupleasing kleäas Essence a, and 80 the Mahäbrahmä's its Icha of destroys destroys rediating meaning Lord 32 major with it of it the and Vajra-Mind, adorned ambrosia The Vajra. -Mind the ra ä i, because the has two aspects: It V of = and false eliminates Vajra, and because called B Dhrii yajri. the ma .4ala as follows: Aparimitäyuhrntxtyai and Rig(s) (122 bin idi gesture and right bhýrateioräia br and having and 80 minor of an appearance marks fearlessness one draws }Dz n ma his left boom ids a Lidaa sham gyi holding ir al a Tatoma. of of Mahlturuta, and with on lotuses, id egs pa aarura He is With his one that bla po),, of Vi lürya fruit and vase. Va ra äni a tranquil and the with Trailokyaviiaya. Vajra-Speech, Vajra-Body emits and has 32 major right rgyal spell The Vajrar-Body 16 petals with in Lod kyi jft5na Vajra-Speeoh fies white To his Lord ribbons with and marked birds namely one unchanged. describes colour like TathAgatas. the all Vajra-Body, called beings. A has Dhrazp, and Tib giving. the called penetrates Tathagata resting is is and explains Vv 172-3-4ff Centre: of the It is It Gods, vases. corners tied etc, one should the of four In Great shaped Lord vase spell The Vajra-Speech Dharma. of notions the comments marks. the and filled ba ii ril as khamns $sum rnam par rgyal lu (Subduer of the Threefold Trailokyayijaya World). As for makes this fruits worship,, the right rdzas and 2) It Tathägatas. auspicious minor is klegas, Vajravarman lu of This of worship and a white ril insignia) removes to order explains Vv 171-5-6: 1)It In vases items and similar of colour, one. passages scent, mantras one places of worship an orb(? royal the with Tn her 'sue ba - birds on this with aeon mo) in Vixu. at left dah bum Aa filled outside etc, scent bia her in comments colour, blessed necks, and so forth. water the in white haves affection with grass following makes the Vv 169-2-2ff places and a kufia a wheel blue She is partner. and looking ornaments all with adorned female dGar mo, Vifqu's North-east: (Phyag appearance. he makes the gesture na rdo In his of giving. rje), right white in colour, hand he holds seated on a lotus a Ya,. ra and with his and having left one 116 Xlcääa8arbha smiths adorned with West: a lotus, the he holds of giving a red lotus. 61. Families Five S has: I take 62.173-5-7ff: the are and is Mahäyana path provided by the 22zga1 a of 21 times it in one hundred and the spell in colour, and it. eight seated With his left ) rg yr hand " Ts 65a6: vases. on hand he makes right rnazr pa or Five vases and so forth. B has: Tib it the the times. fundamental hell. all and receive spell his fron improving any of reborn thousand in red With incense seven against an offence a sword anatikrana to transgressing. = not anatikramät - on account of by adherence. simply These p five reading or ), bo &Lms go= with on a lotus, seated hand he holds right trickling ambrosia At matikrima; B as a better Committing omits. b" Tib transgressing, not all and eight atikrama; Tib with bum palfia Vv 172--4-8: the sj dbat (Kro colour, of giving. ire the with KrodhaTailokyaviý North: of and adorned sailing gesture 60. (spyan Avalokite&vara in In his one he makes the gesture left his blue and omiling. ornamente all with ), Na* mkha i these pledges seven and the Offerings for eliminating rdo rie be made, should evil rebirths the hell is One should homa rite and the is be placed to be performed eight syllabled be pronounced. should bdun). from one from rescuing Purification. consecration, dam tshig commands one strays The means for Tathäatasl ba i rtsa one hundred times. hass Vv 173-4-6 slob din n mi, brjod; I followed this reading my translation. in 64. To 67a2: A las / beam su aase Lift baser as Rhyag mtshan pas b pa po ni ba ate iha kar $a bon de las yag r do bet daft rigs sum ! qMUU nity its viz, (: ate) that which the phyag mts, raft raft iphyag rg3"a ate iha de Kid du sa bon real ibyor sa bon iha t spul raft g raff is raft mtshan du bsg+ur ran _Rithugs is oip so daft sarvavit from o ntre, the is manner sign the indicated of the at each that seed, -. syllable divinity. That by the yoga of tog ni bakur bah M48 la kyah -i I& athoft man mod as so bekuurr bu l bskur bas 80 / rims ii1 to ba 's 1tar rim pa i 1tar bskor ba pa jzt e dbafi bekur ro /. Evi caging a lunar A. hs envisages syllable and from of Z&gj _2W r in Dag a4i Is, dgalks 21 in dam tshig du lha steh be la lt&R du des nasirbd1 (arising) ba i lr ra 1 disk zia / gwk du ni The i bar. r _7 du bid do / da age lha ßi4 rah mama mi Hint ate saf srs t la din to lima ja! dm mcho biin to la bsaºur gah yin beam la bim dlr bat zla sa bon de dbus in atal seed-syllable divine forms, the seed-syllable he envisages being into so the the as above, the of should itself. he produces divi- pledge-Mudrä., performer sign each transform Transforming it as the appro- (it) 117 (literally: divinity priate the seed-syllable the MdAp i in ilies that Note = in accordance like this 6 22, The five tr deadly father, 3)of blood whom the bones, his this is rite the In white. in one draws rim is the colour white-red the Sarvadurgatiparifiodhanar$. the of of seal the the Vikasitakusuma. In west eye, the or seals padma, the one draws The sixteen Offerings' the Mansions The whole etc. divinities. The aceospliah is Clad there in ant the on performing or in sixteen 108 in number. Taking generates destroy the Body of sins of filled with On the outside and food ladle Vajrasattva being a white flower made of on the or and performs experiencing basic of the an evil set white homa like destiny or the colour. of white and embarks birds, eight offerings. manJala. sandal rite. Lunar limited in destiny, the of of here. ornaments of either the their of shaped of outside Planets, and other top seals Goddesses white divinities, silver right belong an evil vajra, represented Further the vases the centre Ratna- of one draws the the a crossed spokes and other one places seal and ZIA, offerings experiencing the the north do not pearls for a vajra, the on aocount with Above it east Good Age, is eight with one draws with for to such as the just on In Vajrasattvas. the modelled one. the outer activities being places that of living drink He also Sixteen different and adorned number, sixteen represents colour. Pändaräväsini, maki, worship, The colour a jewel, to Li departed quarters divinities of and bowls vases a sacrificial the intermediate the the is in white south amuni; kabuudddhaaaand º of rite. the may be performed E that one recalls to S' of Bodhisattvas the One places colour, and name written a wheel Vairocana; of his etc. one draws of for that with (rim) vajras seal ,M On the sets rite to ,A in a white the of other hearth ia; and utpala. of the seal seed-syllables seals the Locan Goddesses, Buddha Four by vajra, the a lotus, the to ketu; ste). w of monks, pacifying required hearth the of representation wheel, one places of wý of Sanskrit for and something a circumference five-tipped made of things use The design of centre an eight-spoked seal the rite may be a card It performed. or The inner spokes. is the of items, and similar else. something (navel), has a centre It a mar}1a1a. one should rite seeds rite description following this 91t In performing _1a:. naistard such as butter, on it, ruf irr. 1) killing Community For du. seem to unsuitable'(mi in intentions. ßi b£in os &2 rims as follows: dissension by evil cg!i is are 4)causing flow to the gives baii one for that'it assertion Three see MMvy2323-28. Vv 180-2-lff the his B Tsoh kha pa doesn't offences(paßlicnnantariyani) an arhat, terms Tibetan and below. above order the of FTC. Tib etc, he empowers hand-mudräs etc. hog go rims and hence Tathägata's 5)causing 66. the with nslation, 2)of mother, lta) A has its(for oip Sarvavit the Then envisaging divinity, each of by means of and by means of general Tib forms as divine existing be). should heart on the divinity each of god it as whichever wood, In in order order one to to pacify 118 Tat the Ufa grass, white As for the inscribed on it, this of light f The outer part one marks in colour. is and other Geardians the of in (Rin the and four oil (yam in In the golden colour, right. cubits in of merit hyjig the made of one hundred it flowers, one succeeds Description the and of the of copper of the or for subjugation oleander with flour etc. the At the end of the the rite and performs red of flowers red or lotuses sandal wood, the the the and draws right turmeric of homa rite crossed times for (? ) advan- legs formed with (? ) mustard concretion to the to }calf a for looks this drawn are to into a stage Mtho fruits or red red mustard, and to power concentration of times paint, left the one pronounces thousand their made either beings of in the is rite living sesame, heaven Vv 181. -2"-3ffs The seals of the Five subdue enter in las), posture, used red one living the maný fruits using barley, firewood a the those of world sk er fulfilment. one hundred red or Ratnasambhava (? )medicinal petals. meditation or Body of thousand of a lotus one should of 16 Vajrasattvas, the with (dbaii, gi In order wood. heaven, etc The ladle left. sandal in Amiittbha. Lord saffron, red of one reborn the smeared from breath down in One sits in a complete belonging spells, incense mustard, of golden colour, 6ifi, things. Increasing and other sixteen with the saffron, subjugation a lotus divinities places. appropriate drams the for rite one draws centre Fasilies the of them to bringing in quarters and so forth. gold Sitting lotuses. of the etc, perform one who is na). rten one, radiating and other of towards one should size, departed a lotus, on top or Locanä looks a ladle the eastern one generates la), bskyed the 10 Directions the with grains, waif), wood together ) 61 (? ) (? la, du ri rogU ma rice, happiness life, the merit, manner this dheebaruba, times. of jewels seals of seals of skur the of signs then on top In way. i rte), 68. the one should perform a jewel, (yºulss karMrj yellow mar khu), parched butter, name and a mantra thousand draws one also Guardians the of of description and Vajravarman's bean hgyir, the vol Khu of a jewel a threefold in bail tZMV speed with cing rim Holding increasing of purpose edition On the gyi the from harita) like idan than Nar centre of a garment Chen hbyui breath Gates, firewood of his with one hundred rite one draws Buddhas, a leaf or missing, colour red-golden clarified a representation PT 3453 is the designed Vairocana Clad the In golden of from taken is 174a5: folio the and performs vol with rite camphor, seeds, with flesh or 76 of the form the at crossed and curds. performed ashes or mustard white look tranquil with down with one sits ris), One performs nose. wood, sandal 187a in rite of sesame, bones his Folio his homa rite one takes 6 tip white rice, and looks centrally, on the ata parched breath the draws legs, of etc diseases (mtho heaven in one living the butter, of red 119 69, Description seated of the Trailokyavij. terrifying length, of vajra or the one offers khadira wood in sword garment, One enters wide ldeh rite either blood, adorned into pieces , poison, of metal black of the a bone thousand black herbs, and concentration breath in one cubit times and bones, mustard, of human bones, with a stage made of one hundred sreg), sbyin and flowers open and one draws ladle kyi on spyod many offerings a sacrificial flesh, sei with a black are ( destroying posture, eyes homa with for adorned clad Holding manner, times is One's aya. thousands catechu One is colour, in homa rite The hearth Vv 181-3-2ff: or blue the of or flour blue a in hundreds of flowers and human fat. 70. TO Tib B has: A& To 70bß haves untimely death nad dazi good pa and all calamities. them aid : all diseases and mischiefs. 120 1. is There but also follows: in variation a considerable between CHAPTER III TO NOTES the lists B and S. To 71a6ff Tib gtso -PLyag rdor the shags p&i o A&B Tib as spells bhrarp hu.ii / vajra rdo ne sems sýia$s va j raiä i/ / kun tu bzafi po gtso bo tigtha ilha dpa ii g*tso bo byed pah.i bskyed sfiý _huii W ýi dpah hupJ yed rdo rye rje same rur'i gi ofLj_va ra na rdo phyag na om / / hutýo kyi d}4ha hure pha vajra rdo rje rhos oz; p then rdo nie rin rrý. "r ra rr rr / / hula list by las ! given The hum vajr Uri oog of spells rje rdo sa vajra khans ph3raa r., -. ý rdor Vv 183-1-2 gsum rnam rgyal .ter His given here list of below spells that suggesting the variants ldan hda.s phyag na rdo dehi mth: j.hi hbru ox b Lru t tr7m 1) pos dkyil sfii$ rjehi hdas kun tu bcom ldan ni d ldan hdas bcom na phyag dha 5) d. baho. va o rrai par rje 4) ii. bzaii pohi sffir"i po. hug - khro om vajrYa quite are she cipag byaho x ams byin dis or are (Vv 183-1-lff) interpretations boom ldan }: das an,, dx hasp tigthý a hum - jM chha bsrun bar 2) va yig and their by side: side sa bon. geed kyi the as ý.pari r B thus to Version comes closer early. duýý... between only and interprets na oskyed byed bor not spells bcoin brlabs patio 3) om aý hu bo kha. s gsum rnam ra,, hum traxp hui 1dan chen rin ibyun ai.. o. dpa gb mad kyi. ho. 7) o vajra. hush adon yod 6) om vajra hum tram sa -hod ru fes bon 4iid dag bskyed de du to iin sa yaft pahi sku par byaho. po rnams aahi See also note 2&3 to Tib At Part III p 145" 2. The description for except the dbus bri los the cha lugs scuhi hdra hazi phyag r'e do g"X las. . r. pa sku i. ý. ream ý. rý.... r4 rdo r ;e dais dril db ins akii is la dan mtshon the of of Sarvavit choice of basic we have drawing Vv 183-3-4ff bdas na rdo ma inte ba Shen 22 km da'i rje da /' i mtshon chos fiid Chen dkyil ikhor f de cihi rdzo gQlis hdra ahi leg i 22 tu bz po bde Ions kyi pa yin different explanation: bya ba ste r'e eni Va'ra three this gives bar _RM phyag na rdo h irr I beb su bri M maadala ehi bajis sku ru bfu nah mar phyir 9mIAs na rdo ri ehi / $o rdo rje kha is su mod a ska de thabs daft Sea rab / du ba. is 3. ph it deal daý'i iur rten dpah rdo rye + +. r in" rrrr. .. r r gems r+. rrnr.,, ., r, rr r. bu ], dam, a, i ba then bi skis mtshon pa daai / yai'i rhos kyi -p9 j2os mtshon rto.. c tharns thabs r)o r . semis d ah bam b rdo skuhi7ta to do ' mod khyab ph yir the marýela,, boom ldan a la su bäume pa ii bahi par bo chos kyi bahigtso r .: / sRam na Ehyir instead As for the same as that ham ya!. na rdo rje Sems dpah ham kun tu bzafi / hdi ltar boom 1dan hdas phyagna rdo rjehi au rdo roje bri $es gruAs pa ni s of centre the where Samantabhadra or in is mmýela divinity central or Vajrasattva divinities the of i chos a r ... h su reed cad bps dan kvi nab pa'io /, ýe bral bar es he ahjra! * rmra bas ri r baUphyir bde u. ba chen `wir i bde / boom po is ý..... ba in chen hdas su med Par ýjwr ohi kun rnam tu bzO mdzad pas 121 A&B Tib this 4. At the texts deli read S reads: 6. Tib B has lhag 7. Tib B has: 9. S has hayafiveta Tib A has: for mantras are: 01 saw id jewels one given but they head, the footnote; 31 and name. 2) Consecration Five the Wis. is Sei . The mantras five the dais o the different I: anifestation Unaffected o stages of are the given. destru- together the the the with spells of vases, below anointed the seven differs Here daft las i the bell these with . reams abhisiftca from the c) yon b) tan Five Buddha ozg buddhammla mudrS$ of the khhor k is etc. Goddesses. abhi, yifoa, Five Buddhas. l daz o bahi 6) nhäraýi etc. The prin- consecration. words; su khyod bell, va rap pa bum pa), The karma abhi§iiica .i a) ream par thought; Pära. this: 5) ri (rig as the ißi ca etc. tadhära concentration: is one binds buddhakarma company of here The mantra diadem, water, knowledge of conceived non-discriminating by the He is and private The parts. hui / orb sarvavid abhisirica given with vase bhi sarvatathä¬a. of is from since consecrated. one recites which r Basically the descriptions are the same . and here new materials are added. Here vv garland, are: is heart, Version 1218ffý Jp 10 consecrations va ra and the alma The mantras are: brings in pupil huYp / etc is cgs uddhdra receives Tib odhaaya hats the Buddhas with dan rin brings wrathful point throat, Consecration. with 4) The pupil the vow, the 1) the are: readings Chap II of with The mantras At ißic 3) Consecration Consecration Version º arranged them as follows: the this description differently of haý yagrriva. different Buddhadhara at shoulders, Vajravaxinan's vase nas. Sanskrit equals One becoming the taking describes cipal // flowers. and 0: with Then he receives are dart nas ni pas reg totally A where broken sva, hutp / o,, ij v :jräbhi in As all Vv 183-2.8: po bris lag made of Families$ of etc. for Victorious clearly After of Buddhas. 14518. Ap soft mi mans B rTamgmgrin which together runs Vv 129-5-2ff: Five the has been it crown Tib Kings. of The text on the byol perhaps see S and Tib Seven Tantra Seven Families 11, follows o ba drua a garland Tib Vajradhara now onwards logs from days. pa de nass B. but the of ction diverge honey B reads Tib Thus Tib ten wound with 8. 10. f yi // sops min those in 1. to translation our ba daA dah lha lha de blin differ, dmyal rol B begin S and Tib point slightly phyi for S yantra. putra The pupil e don aon$earaticn. entere here. pa keul tu. +snah tshogs kyi$ mi i mi rtog belud kyi thaws cad kyi mdzod - Treasury De 122 of all srid 7) The Secret skyo: $ ba - Protecting the mudrä Here consecration . a?i ba don de nas nas mu tig i bar gtax Qi?:ca etc. For byaa la hoff ba baths ba ni bskar the with ih rim le pa ii lta de nas dkar iewels: a) po lfas ba bin lo) wheel(hkhor äma all accomplishing the head, is the tion of six plus the teacher with Fjflam the tion dban byaxo. to däsyämi Light-giving is enabling In order pupil 12. For the pupil gains this its the tigth. (Isn dbaf Consecration jewels one by one on the of abhi4i4iiccalhurp a Universal king. pupilb etc. 10) Consecra- living beings marjalas and the rest saying: o hup. This in pa bka the accomplish last d in pro- accordance arva, tatha one is _). called This consecra. - purify pursue the stages ten reading the of see Tib and consecrated control over a B6dhisattya's Ap in 122'3. the basic the dharma path, Vv 130-5-1 awq4ala that states of this Tantra Buddhahood* vv 131-1-12 lama is meant. dir ni ata. - nature. and gain initiated of of himself a more complete being manner lu-avajrasusiddhaye in should 9) du f) soldier of Via; g) man (skyes pa) - kle5as; ' `?'hen he continues Tantra. Word-Consecration to id hosts the o? va. jracakra ripening :Ifharmay making Holy of the 'For say: should dictates Consecration pramitäs Here the first seven are conveyed . the vajra lam). Next putting head, on the pupil's aspiration(smon the the uhyäbhi- difi mdzee kyi the mantras: in mos gdofi Cakravartin Lord the the here rtse ag rgya iPica a iespahi sýa s kyis the of Placing the pronounces consecrated of attacks good qualities. master The pupil clamation by the - andistressed par to 8) . byas rigs destroying all obstructions; (nor bu) - granting Buddha c) gem knowledge free from false notions rta) mi) rjejhi i Buddha-fields; visiting all (bud d) med) granting wife qualities; lar3 kal anä opa); e) elephant o) , killing b)horse rdo 10$' see p abhi ai d,en fies rab par bound, is du osarvatathä dan Ges rab thabs aid Doctrine; Holy meaning secret raz'i gis 4Sopyottamayo. or pra the of and translation bde ba chen po thabs seven tom -Pinnacle of the the wheel of existence. la thig bu ii text similar Wisdom and Means. beifs RhyaP,, xa ba lta gi. phrefi padmar of chos kyi dam p&i lo pa ýkhor e) gi d) good qualities; bla ma i chuff ma ste - In this case the wife of the 123 ". For 1ý. Vv 131-5-4ff the d; mah a parallel the that on hearing the drum outsidq the on hearing explains he sees appearances he achieves a monk, the of eaeity Vv 132-1-8: with scent, enters and recite the the next the 21a divinity basic the purified by reciting their this mmaaqeta of which and the 'I'antra. to refers the member divinities mar; ala from he does everything; well, it as 'The On the and omits us in is sure five stüpas bahi ca itya He rolls made of it On the his a house to this osm by name or clay, to by it h. viidda Tib nas. sädhana. The yogin he writes (izbi the with B rather mi i nass el nes call upon one's an intention to spells it copper, draws the of Five spokes in the name. recall or byin xe4 Tatki which gyi$ tas of the name thousand other spoked spell he writes one hundred jewels, an eight-. saffron rdo intermediate up and places sand, in or benefit. navel he writes of s$a s or midi daft call his vag'ra-consecration' Tantra. and who by adhering meaning understanding for on the lie writes a temple promote in resemblance he belongs behalf the establishing name', the spokes on his the dx, e. in as or smnos nas or mile nas brjod act on bark. a caitt him. with sädhan. opaya. means to to and the by many people acting called the order in the available, associated to whose family it miiz deft spel This deceased. of is not Then he places mantras divinities and worshipped 'calling or tenment. and thus one is things name or uses the usually in departed the of ._'"nlig. it with the as min nas I3irgatiparigodhana millions it he places help smote on cloth called his or practice Vv 136-2-7ff. the is Tath. gatas body of spells it presence br labe). effi- a girl, is which concentration of r.Crnought of has either a or we render of the translations inconsistent the image two as one. 2+ib A renders is his This Tib wheel the the become liberated liberation. 2 to accomplished can be honoured practice one's On seeing mind. success; place, every worships state of Since the the it od his worldly a solitary referred and consecrates heart conceives br having draws he raises 20. in or sunrise. First where reality As for the tetras. of sentence. mantrin on his efficacity success; worldly times. a threefold Vv 136-1-Sff: 12. in seated and eight mantras B adds: lib he accomplishes body head he achieves a brä: nmaaa, rah-amu.drä; The maa;jala The yogins 18, the in and flowers, ointment Vv 132-2-5. to his above he obtains The yogin one hundred sunset bell his in mantras. 16. mantras laughter on hearing them either the 123 Ap see Tib passage 1ff things. or 124 Vv 136-3-6ff. 22. performs the a hearth for and the mantras. Thought of basic the of spells pacifying by means of the circle that the homy Vajravarmen says homa the sign and the abyin sbyin sreg). the He digs deceased and hearth the in yogin out on a cloth he designs which the Here sacrifice. or whether only ba i name of The first things (ii the mandala geig Fhyogs draws perform corpses. called rites, the etc, mustard is sacrifice Vv 136-5-6ff. he should he should perform indicates that the here a sign such as sesame, sacrifice which it perform he should that one indicates second homa he should given things various using sacrifice is yogin to refers various using it perform whether regard with corpses. be smeared should here modelled on a lotus; the In lo basic on the he draws the the the Offerings and the 26. As a part of the tr south he draws the cow and with he draws navel the ; to the of The spot scent. The hearth syllable hrih; west to the of kic ar orm the north 'our Buddha trip v sin!, the Bodhisattvas, hearth. the seed syllables past = Pan - amak3, map = NN, seed syllables the On the mandala. quarters = Lacanä, of the of measurements products hum; to east intermediate Goddesses: Next with the to five the the detail in describes Vv 1337-1-lff 25. a. deceased pacifying and performs is the the and raising homa the visualizes to is name of sä dhana This Vv 136-4-2ff. 24. the the by means of accomplished la. mNI, 23. s7idhana he recites ightenment, is Sarvadursatiparigodhanar Buddha Remembering Ii This Eight ýnä. rL Goddesses of others. is text Sanskrit missing in this we follow passage TbAp12614-21. 2. Vv 137-5-5ff. sre ). Seven days means of madja1a. on the water it ornaments and pieces (" k atýri a etc). wrapped spell orp sarvavid white sandal it the with eyes; fluids in is The corpse Next ävarangni on the orb sarvavit the yogin blessed and other the the with with the it consecrates ýýhuý lotus drawn the spell ears; ha the formulas ointments corpses of four classes with the the He writes on bark seeryeyid or i with the main it with of spells heart sb"in by corpse and adorns at ro obstructions He washes and blessed h to which refers . dispels the divinities. Yogin with pha.j the incensed vitiodhaya navel, sacrifice accordance wood on a four petalled camphor with cloth a garland. death, camphor with of home. wrathful and other lie anoints with the after meditations scented milk, the is This men and the with this something spell with and glue he consecrates 125 orn sarvavid with the sra the shoulders; with -ekles; the the As for 3) the calves with )the upper S7-3amur_i, S, the ?3a feet the of and the corpse of the the with the with Dur _t t zees with head. the or, -,-ans with ryrisýocllanaräjaý the of spell Vik. si ta. 'a.. suma. of the in offerings on sarvavit the of crown spell with orn se vaviw t tratha da with one sarvavit two lower the spell 4) head; part; 1) aketu, throat; with huffs aye the with of spell parts he places Text two thighs the elbows; he consecrates places, 2) Sarvavit, of spell other the private 1ha jßlänasa oti va,jrldhiti with rear; front pa the om sarvavit the a orb sarvavid with hurl orb sarvavid with the träm orp sarvavit with nostrils; forehead; qi the o,, sarvavid o a the zee-iaala and consecrates it. ff: 28. Vv 138-1-7 the his form butter of he pronounces this it He covers t 1at'rä s. i: hite he e disperses in four havinn 'e is the of at offerings senting angry and the of the in his hands right an orb ladles five hands he holds and a cup. of melted butter tom) tath"agata(for a'kyaräja svwha. 6; daha daha ntirg kure them with presents them. worships transcendent presents to ýý i form (ye arhan (for four ). w , i. th his fo k?now- the mas on of 'Ten Directions. in seated the rites, arms and is s. si;: front Prehim of rq-re, t hermit seated ladle, on a nat. and in his left a hermit. The yogin pours and says: om deva g .kya b 71ta sa samyaksambuddha awe) orb ]: av ka.vya. melted of of butter offerings ges kyi offerings to the as 'Fire God of by means of Sugatas he offers First fire °ý ice, as says: oip a ^,ye rý;, p rarg svähL Then he summons the Ie god of appearance on the ladles three He puts _vala him and a sacrificial a garland. He has the diadem. and the Times the Aui, he Hext lotus summons seat. on a (las kkyi me lha. draft sro-i then po). He has lý)i. yy v: i- tbreatenin; endowed with imagines Yogin >y11a )le ano one he mcas tvat ti-,,e 1'iv,: ý or dF. ývt a tranquil of soi:7avas - , Fiat Akgobhýva's Three ;op a vaj. ra and a foc^e. other 'He is person. melted 'r;ho on mcuit. rns light Wrathful he holds the basic the produces v?, jra tiyjha or having yet and petals, boundless the and wears that feet, the summons hands Tathägatas his with times and with of sins 108 space ornaments all mantra: yomin bsý< mq ra. ) with for eight with he right a lotus on the ledge-_fire his In with adorned he tra^nples rather (bsýspa following into that of colour, .as. he holds hand blessed with By means jaya, left and a, cloth his in the places the consecration, smeared a lotus draws he items, the completed On a mat divinity. other and Paving and invites a burnt byin Precious ? ites (las za) ones. kyi the them to sacrifice together explained previously enter three with the times his hearth to :'ollowing his in Then he mantra. this and Agri Text he makes an offering me lha), method. three he says: times . 126 oýg räpa, sv ä, oii ratnaketu osg vairocana ýäriti kure k-uru svähý ti offering 6o j dhanarg a. pari !bile finger First with three the in fingers ei, -'it On its size, kTla vajrakila it with IT. 'Tv 135-5-1 iahi o reside together within the performs the implements, with the together at narakagat i hatch thama sarvatlzya&, thousand or The signs ten which heart aca yogin he sees if tip. Son and says: it. with Then and so forth. silver. ka.rl svahä.. forefir. _;'ers his ilo vavijsya vikränte, together fists one thousand the same as those ashes the Yogin sa.rvava. - arjt thame, times, by offering are held daha daha tag, tirhe tum hu ; fit, it the of Joining of ayý. Nixing ve arte sambýhs. sins he succeeds vij as described the blessing the He purifies "raiiok}> ; gis same appearance amte sarvapre Vv 139-2-2 ff. In the gathering by means of meditation on Wrathful envisa? e the Body of Sarvadurgatiparifiodhanarä kinds from five stones and makes of precious the the at r, oma sacrifice invi confirms the He does hur º Thal. million wood, one hundred a sacrifice. described pre- (p ? Z. ). obstructions va, 'ra. he am vajrrakrodhatra. arg uaca times. that of wood a.r, d a hie-3d made of has the he places and says: Matihetug their messenger oft am tteasnrtodbhava IBIT,, p]Mjj, them making sandal and round boiled milk rice, Tie offers with offerings the items, mantras compassion. great white top concentration ijaya `I'railokyav vikrä: ýnte gamins like fingers a chain little 30, sandal. sa.rvakazmaklefaksaý*am om amrte viously made of of a state fire. of and he strikes svähä, garment. a white apata. yogin sacrificial this with the In worshipped all ambrosia the sreg). the off Here sbyin Fie is above. , he says: the at together kure i. a handle having knot necklaces, and upakl. eýas from bu) phur Tath3gatas pa a sarvap he makes a mallet Striking the kieRas the bal; i a large having he imagines surface (ii dart in etc. rice, rvadurgati- of boiled butter, melted Ehvisaging dreseed Siaatas, make an head, on his thoughts parched pastry, and dancing. he makes a tranquil person incense, things, sweet rice , lotus gesture 29. then flowers, the of rmlantra a diadem himself in and arouses v_a'i Then he should and is ornaments kura inuura. s basic the <- warmuni a päpa- papag7nti 10d times. he wears offerings, , east agwccha reciting and other rings , towards he presents Tathäatas the presenting hra celetp . , re looks the the to 21 times do it 6 om svW-I, and makes the mantras He should Sons and entourage. their to those He pronounces and so on. of vikasitakusume of ha tra hing tiT)ari6odhafa sv .hä, 2i sarvaiur kure sra päpagäntiil ntiTL1 icuru He says: ashes into or vajrasattva a pure and white hum tigtha, cloth. first should !"hen he should Divinities. He blesses a. the mudrä va, irasaxn dispel of the a.ha bun,, powder derived five-tipped and he collects 127 For 31, the one born the yogin JI. Vv 140-2-3 must described their corpses. times the deceased. Then once Having completed the with Sugatas the upon ta. to night Vmalai the the x rabh performed The set and the lists vali text description vo divinities i is set of with benefit Vim is that this work the in T. T. vol and our is men12la text 80, to has been belonging given. No 396. 45 only. of the or perfect inantra. the 13ody placed !,Tay they enter ashes of the open like as lotuses Lord's of closed by opened the on behalf on acting heaven lotuses are gods were the 33 gods, instruction and i'prabha. below his man.dala of is found not work in this listed are edition where translation eta the A 'aa.rgatiparigodhana. I3hattacharyya set Tib ;,Tig entitled by Benoytosh Sanskrit The names aid of a lake. in 4.ra truth an ocean here The Tibetan hbha By the the Just , to one thousand tiparigodhana, to all obeisance by the embarked edited ý tas seeds 1298ffcontinues. the the Taking ' He throws eyes described remains, beings AbhayMca. ra.. ;u 66-71 and on pp of of as belonging ri'he divinities text -kiglish accordance the living all .y destinies. evil Ap from for become heard. so the Sacra he writes navel directions. gods were wide god who fell jah pandita this bibliography). the the divinities ccmaents. ries, The Sanskrit the of in for just teaching. young .' the rites Tib he draws remains into the of sun shines, Tathä; Sata's from a set ,arvadur the Truth, flowing they r'a.t-h consecration, ': into sacrifice by name. ten it collect -u-id makes lightenment. eyes which the the in end while the that fruits their and mucir: saying: a river a Koma, the rite and recites On the II!,, -.ata ,ea, Great and gain teaching of all of true of B suddenly explains of mantra the Alternatively he should become freed rite and open when the obtained YO by the into S and Tib Here brightness of residing destiny offerings with on account Times consecration by this an auspicious Vv 141-1-3ff at Three rite and puts them. deceased He makes supplication and affected a. mantra Tathä. gata-Word, ^ath together his them with the basic on it the seed he envisa. 't each and by the and mudrr, here in of the the this divinities h-e performs sacrifice, and calling he recites the performing 'path . gatas. the again burnt in chosen more of or of spells of deceased thousands the flour al. a the name of of he succeeds, In performing himself exerts EN the mustard, of the If mantras. resume and morality. yogin the He envisages He blesses truth of Once more the should Yogin show him a sign. ff: on it their effort utmost the appear, reciting with or hundreds or more. räja" does not act them white 1285-12 Ap a sign Tathägatas and writes name of mixing If He write mantras. 108 caityas the see Tib among gods will above. an effitiy of the of worship departed of ff: Vv 139-5-3 32, of text a clearer lists of on pp 68-72 a complete ?Tiq : gnna- and describes descriptions (see of the 55 45 divi- a_ 128 in nities given gupta, except instead for divinities is and V,-:t'ravar Vaj rava aa pta's for the the same except Suklarathe:. ho and Abhayy kara, gupta's A The names and the in included text our 6824ff p s Valrasaumya holding an arrow *ra Vajra the Vajrarrhu a solar right and left the lrathful is T is like Vajraketu. his in disc text on a lotus on a frog, seated like is He is Vajra and black red not and Vajrasaumya. on a lotus. sealed is ',lrathful it- holding %.ra? uru. ýukrava. jr and a pot. a rosary is are Sanskrit seated colour, like is like. is Wrathful in fiuk reads which ävali, Nigpannayo >tunyF, in colour, white is Our text 1{` divinities yellow 'ajras 1? Guruvajrn. the i trorathful ;jrathful and a pot. a rosary holds the below. cara- Vajra vagin and Vajrava6a #ä. The description of vehicle. the of here given and a bow. the Vajraguru descriptions are has a pair Our text by AbLty iven ones accord'witnpihe°corresponcting two divinities. Abhayäkaragý of these text our in white in colour, and a lunar and okra. He holds colour. is Vajräsuri hand: respectively. like Vajra. - raun. Vajraketu Vajranä. noose. this S misses a female tern is is pry I He holds mounted 16. Tib B has Ul e2. B rdo with on the B has: Lll. gi rests Tib Tib not a vag 3z. fl in Ile holds colour. terminolo T{indu normal in in use er term for tantras Buddhist with relation it a set and in our 'his rje his ovn vajra, ' for right -:and and again of usually meaning the essentially Tibetan a vajra on an elephant. VajraI u~da. Pia mo. the name and description 42, . Tib and a snake- where S vi6va. hip. sna for has a B omits gakti term the Tib B hass a trident. Tib a sword text regular non-Buddhism the Sanskrit transliterated. B has raA one which in it Here occurs . There is no Tibetan merely Tib has is partner divinities. term that One may note 35a, in descr.. i_ption. the of part black Bs a key and a sword. of this divinity. Niepannayo*a, vali his left with X29 4. ! lot 4. The following manner in the S. mudräs have muudrrs it 48. Tib been already seems to translated above is passage omit it in the Tib . B adds: tree of Tib B reads this complete ten thousand, Llidha 1!. in the left the right leg drawn 52. Missing in such of I set, (see am aware 4 to note of such 149 page in Part J TT-) translation, present and the others. in back, the text) one stands with 'or drawings the the these of des muses S has one hundred available. are posture pratyäliqha Editions is or whatever in and below. here of numerals two particular postures right knee advanced left foot is two postures Paris nationaux, and advanced see Dieux 1977, and et p 48. S. B has: Tib set one hundred demons de 1'-Him .lava, sets paradise. back. one drawn lucent no very on pp Vajra of mantra and pratyälTdha(below In älidha post--ire shooting. the in Similar mad ala. farther this with thousand, the of B hast 50. 90b describes folio i. n'th. obscurity better the divinities tentatively extraordinary that the of translated having up to passage fingers the are joined, and then out stretched inside placed again. Tib B begins Tib 16. Missing Z. B hast forefinger «, This he joins Tib is the the 61 Tib 62. ;-Ii.ssing with his hand. right not translated. a fist third joint I:'e does with of the his the hand left he presses middle prot2-ading the same with left the finger. tip of like two previous defective B reads: in S. joined and incomplete. to others. ones is quite hand placing difficult the bent He should it on the thumb. mantra B is fingers. ring he makes a fist with: Read fvasanakhe &. the S. foreward. and bending phrase making to it stretch in (gesture) that the $iknitoli tt Tib from B has: to interpret. hin 130 B begins the B has: gods, from with: phrase the gesture of summoning. YaakkEs, Tib 6. Tib ha Gan !-k vas, Tib . B: 66: S reads 6, Tib 68. 69. Tib C, p 98, 71. L6. On the na these me tog 1L. doge nsfien 7 5, Tib bdag dinar pos me the rant 'T'hreefold Z, B has: red garment, by afa chub B reads 80. S reads 81. These verses ca.tur'&6e would although their sense according to Pratimokqat having reads five abMAM. ý. Seep banks. higher 1 asas. ]i the up in text, See Tibetan text ' 'O flowers'. ' merely the the with flower' . pledge. missing in S. essence of the pledge, the Thought of ' iligh tenment, is see p 7t but adorn paa 'the in Tib the vow for htenment' B. three vows. 'fourteen',, but appear to be lightly clear. ! li The set see Tý? vy 8358ff. of incongruous four refers instructions to the hineous in worshipped. Vera intuitive Vidäräja. knowledges (paPlclbhjjf ) see the vocabulary the crimes 7 82. See p 16 -j For a.b,)cIes. >rotection. hi s sentence is missing 180 ýi? . Tib B has: endowed with 79. 86. of 'red enter is B res: Tib lord 'the two lines who do not and the 85. and lunar solar forest' kho nas rae tog B has: Tib 840 S has: on the :ýa axcýas, s, Garýzýl.as, 6&7. B reads Tib mountains, and on river 'celestial B inserts U, . 77. tanks ponds, p.ohi I-Iib 13 reads Tib Ku bhäý,ý 'cities'. reu . surakänane lines Tib and eastern western B has srin Tib horaga, Mah as s. B: Lakes, S has Asuras, under text 131 88. 89. Tib B reads B is Tib translatable way this either 990 üee pt - could `g'ib B omits. 92. S reads anekakaxma 21- Such a description . mu i's enlightenment. holding Tib ass refer to 'many of me ii rje phyag proceting, he directs the production of the Va'rF_na, la r_nya a Tathagata thus his remaining thought. Translated Vajrasattvas. rites'. an imperturbable B adds one more verse: a trident. pa rdo %'jg 91. 94. Begs de bfin _ NäyB, Vi sage relates u endowed' with to the scene the, vaj ra, of liva Sa a-. 13 ft. , is Literally initiated with tantric and so any together Just life India andowed the. i 213, footnote Me see D. L. Snallgrcva* Suddhiat vol a I* Without 1) c]airvsya 2) intuitive Tantra* part sea Part I! references one, page 131; Tibetan G. Tuuti` csonftrrtd important other of Bodhisattva' ). Painted Scrolls, we shall (l s"º hearing w (ph* roh gyi people's the as five origin and ellhi jat i mig) i (111601 rna be); jot ,r one acquires about their discussion here six list career The abhi j? a are listed into entering 3) knowledge of other thoughts " g,+lrllitts_fi' f Ass Pa); same lives ering of previous (o?ion gyt gngo r jer 5) knowledge of oagisat gyi to in and ability, oonascrati©na the Hevajrs (abhi, knowledge development re Invocations riata to kingutiipj r diape3ition for In the *oum intuitive t) sa gyred band page 24?. iiM, or six. performed of up^rarl to pago U?, page 68 ff; Himalaya, rites The consecrations d. of different description A pupil an the path of religious an it with water. bail# a, mm were conscsrate4 to 8uddhs mors consecrated For drtailsi such these %to marked practices upon the. as vej the racitationa with as in ancient tantri e with by means of practices artic and other vases 'aprinkllnCl meaning into 'SLIM SPIIIAL. VOC481LARY Of by. be iss su dran pa lies pa) l performances Wtjj1dh13MOa j; - (rdzu Ophrul cs) i 6) knowledge of overassing evil influence. -, ý výekea lt a. I. . AGgs)X, A luddha, It different tantric they ble torn or L' fusüd Into &:W receive l ty of ";4xj ono the suth Adhip a can be compared to th blessing . and live in Conformity o or 'to r. by one receives Causative exist., * with in (stets Sind. or 'snvi3agiz g. t or thought-creation d in a state of different divinities visualization In 9uddEtist production prut-sea of emanation A yogin by applying as his ''arm the ''existence' in the form of individual By mvere3 of this the true to reSlis8 terse sqi 3a the state to th, mental Of RExi- sneer itself n&turv to be' as 'visualizing' at+ nd a mental in an idealised er complex Ne9jal®s. the true 'causing 31atad it I und categories saligjaw to not oto Busgins! of ooncientratioir. produces Inner them, and strength by asrreopcndin9 others principlaa. I ýava*Itra 3y visualizing d to *n nt tan of grace at support the divine renders -it #to produce' antat divine s ordains form of bhl7,, msaninc literally Tibetan teeuni.. Christi their trsgßfvta c t3l to p rft rm aartat red be trsrm"tt which ci those powers ors transmitted others. lit at even an a bra ° or ' b1.oaaliV apoworaent' divinities of inherent t are brad statu by ' has been rendered rmture is realised. of 'Existemge of guddhshood. or eawbpdhy&Agas. The seven factors of Enlightwment of a Hodhi*. ttva: l) nindfulnss* (LISti) pssssnality and is essential it - to his spiritual over his most ssnstsrntiy s*sreiss control MW the (phone a1 av nta). dharwsa element of his forms an important progress. body, feelings, $a thoughts +ýý y<<, 2) inve stigatian to min 3) vi bMIi (ein - E' a upskja (btaA - rot study full ( Enlightenment form e part9 Sanskrit 19"# La ,, too Har ßayslt is one of the p3ramitf. career pursues different contacts, He ahou 1d practise psNetioss " series *O*eion salours Ass na. the c°tu: for or reflection, of his to preliminary family life th .. perfect e and social states (compassion) ss) 9 kA &M whereby he sonusntrates bases of exercise . and six rasa. Iahen ha has perfectod states and are called mantel Clements producing then ho anbarka on axar icing of mental do Sagess#s (oquanimity); he should ±, joy) r and 11 . by fixing his mind on in contr. clli. n hie attention ftjgnsae to dh of rh (rriindli*s! in which he cultivatoo f*vourabls 1932) in the course he must rsnc urtzm the worldq dhytr sn the four CostrIne published cis Ra Grand Vertu A tochisattva stages practising the tort ktt 1975 (first ýs ;since of Meditation yeMrtl + ytna himself the Bodhisattva of chap XXXI. from its (sympathetic Dolhi Le Traits tta, to conducive principles r,1^ii of which the seven fasters Literature,. vol LIIi Apart wma), dipka Etienne pp. ßO'464; na h &izin,) 3 of the thirty-seven EnUghtsnsont in Buddhist tu a;yyaha pe)'V (ti? ef + ri teshwant exercise Pd. Ptth parsuu t end cet«Uineti"$ mtant ef' sntratian SWItZ rob ti (19atJb) 3 S) serenity Louvain ot A OWML*3ttvs n bgrus)g, . 1, 4) ye t- Il (brte JU» with 7) rma aýsa + per vbyed pa) 1 x- 6) ss irate tl (ehe* which follow himself different in preliminary stages one another onup'Vrvavth! ras. states The first of dhyäns, in regular four of those I ntai are states (attain ýtU 1) First snts joy a-joc punia4 The nine mental . v `l3ctl v?t l 's P.-ad ni; (fiten 5) he transcends it, the perception rcalir, ic 93 the 7) he res ic . infinity of the Comajousnom beings. Reflecting an the "d marry and coWassion Such pity, the Thought of CmUD ; rsaaft4 living at all beings. stop era is+aaasurabla. a Oadhisattva' Thought 1fiX a prsviou3 not apply efforts A for his cwn 9"d at Eni. ightw=ent to him. participates, st Enlightwowst at merit' Stage Of UN a do (k Tile vita raises +i$&ttva and for in his and advantages and tran (c !ý. t ý/ýiýeý toI a) The other of egotism and liberation of this heroic graosiane of the Um at kAM are cancelledip merit ai the Thought the toatit ( living at the very rest Every one who ona"ursge$ Z&1uIgfl ) and abandonnant ý+ýºsssýra«awýslýra-sari lie The wrang doings lives sp OM makes to save otter in order to baeamm a Bodhisattva a raaolvo "ssoto and feeling arwstr ý.a" his of Nothingness; Conaci vensss or nsn-consciousness; of neither 9) ha abi. d ¬j i. n tha ritatea ire las the and realises Consciousntssl in than state and s'tdaa Irr the acta ß) he bitlos rot fats of material of Spice; infinity 6) ht j the of pur. the five er and mindfulness; Of squanisity state gig: _dtUffa there in the sbtrssa st of, entzatt*n tigf; 3) TI rd SLA ! K- a atits 4) fourth is a*s aistad with Fen tram uv It, arise** are as fslXserut states fl and inv sttcaUDn; ti by z, Pl 2) fond l srtonn frsa it " gb&l inag ernes are Called s and the r ed key a}. a 98dhisattva The raising in of is one of the three two are purity in all its forms of intention 1? ,' hj r. *ra "antrakwr ýr rrý ý twee are quits often used tentr3 (so® and in Viijreve n's riotiGn of rseitattan etch for associated recitation (mudrV) seal R obtained. is it by **poll** transtation It can be spared expression of a divinity oct . va aspect of a divinity is es in to the gesture different Sosturos divinities seed of the text Throughout or seal) of this entirely refers made by the tentric or with regard 15 and 18) of their (dhy' a desired the which viesrJsmmwdM. ritual to laure he asks a divinity LO 4 ce. It instfon is iepostent of sue"t with, regard by of and hand thus activities. when sf sunning he sakes the gesture he writes the gesture to Mar partner. to different by pl dgs'gsst "ntre, refers and hand gestures is present Wm is or to poeturas ritual a the @WSJ (translated to postures rendered is of a$ feminine divinity urrenc. of In uttaratantrea affect. (' karia of the whereby the he melees the gesture (sssiey in by 'formula*, tantra to different is result a divinity which ) a, essence divinity +na By activity. is into prsstieer is mantra he OuOmw* a particular ºudz1), fundamental ma awcss. however, syllable drawn in the Ala divinities Inas of a divinity brought thee and tendered let {*rti fvs, 3y in the ss used almost . a heart expression is 5i imitation translated or verbal of Thus, whereby and by seem to art sactarsal it effective d and vie e1lssd. ensrst text tantrie with meaning divinity. boaft or opined reefers peso meaning* divinity literally the can be considered particular rendered iii *a text On the they (japs) in bly crilt a particular with repetitive inter oamovatary has its hem These three . iA»ps., rig -in)* the exempt* r etic uns of (f .ýr.nd vß.dyl ýarcrswwrr s) j, finally of dismissal in mind that and dhylns, the tsntria the these 1 haters asantJ*L f $Dsltity, bedy, "oath dirfwmt got v9 !'u rnud The ks 1, vel* Absolute itself. r! 'rho sa ayanud& The mahleudrt and the mundane. Fear further Fart one pace 135, and C. Tueci, p 'a 244. Arabs high s. in dhissttvs q m1iti s, requires sucv. od oostpiatsly in his moral (szigrahavsstus) 4U%d r'e i 1) caw,. rt A tt eoan in all 3) sgip rani and ways of 4i their forest ve, The Hevajra Besides means or (, end the extent leto lots] vol 1 frage to order conversion he needs ac,,, Testre, apart in r is o1 four gdgfj of the and wanner of their or an the phertsoa sharaoteristies. . an absolute Seating knoAod-ge of different language the Doctrine* knsi4. dg. of attractive iI'$Ssfltatl. Scrolls Oocttine, the krowlsdQa solute their tt fotwuiaa Of the divine the Great Bliss. with Puintir additional en al$aivts sro* in all identified teaching mission* is to b aamtng swage of to the unity Tibetan an the t activities use ß. L. $nellgrc references Ab zmnta of tantric refers rotor* is (great- and mah' nu*I to c5jffere, The dhar is e turQ), p to particular refers t! and thorn , pvaQtic (act-; a-gesture) 'g rvase wAgkta rsfar practices* in ritual karss*mudi (pled `g segayraesu The per ttcipetion , and winds mudgWowiled siedzýuý nci.*ely of notion by siudi8. at body is expressed Besides to the threefold correspond ºih nearly activity dt: tý^ 77 R of the Dictrina" and excellent .i meaning 'coming Literally n9gap tOntria is practices the diwir4ty absolute The Tibetan wes (Part 1. tantra by mains Adhana as desariptiöns provides in H*tmver# (rnudr' )" nopp divirrit of 23) amaning escasian" tng divinities of 2umsaar. u-id . and making mantras of the by Is akaba CbrEJ r yr* sr. the visualizing viio rscittng of r :c ya by can tshigo 25 and 29 and paga3 99 line EVQß*trioni between exists 'ar; ýw,. rehear usually page 3 liras IgM" that to the aenaurrance refere and phvnomia an this places III It of auf . mmaya in notion of a bond at pledge that and the ye4in. cctaQoriae in O to rinse together' The basic as *no* e at abiding errs it their cs,, . 6 written and tpalia Qsaturess va ton .A 1) stags. ii# CItts 2) R@Xj4 whole 3) f (seas his itt Is (ye a universe .i st They are byad la he has the the -" control 3tery Is dbnA ho) (las is dbsA bs) of career then in the orders the over knowing - Marna the acquires he acquires following dbah ba) (tshe karea he has Null the b3) e't7trs his mind, the design the of (quipmort). h, Ho f4i1l -i-,, - c, ritrol over the length lire. 4) kFjMMpMjjtX S) WW-tti, in listed db*F in advancad to Dat'sbhtmik4 According powers. eighth who is Bodhisattva (ehye va unýve*ae ba In he has control $) #gMiwAtiXvL1. itff hs has control ca ntro1 connr herirJina the consequences of ever it. ftnt, over be) da otending ur; "" origin of Girth. (mom pr In dbeA be) -- t ever Aspiration. the Pin seas all this Buddhas .' ''? (atevQ Is dbaR ba) - comprehending 7) JAAaMygjAj nth. Dh. r a) h rdr .. £s%lighte (. tmmnlaw Aasdab 10) A a. of mau they Lieg ft r to his sirs he Over throws. 'K_('dzu O:LPSIiult be) - kreaing t in ally Etuddha-sphiare according has the mastery 9) ever it, has control i the acui1ce Of phri är e ihO hat) ha bsi) OGM-t sl a: cý «. ove'T 4ids powers* (ye ja s la dba bra) . Eis fully aftd thus is the maatsr knows t. a attPLbutes of knowledge